Cornell University Library The original of tliis bool< is in tine Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://archive.org/details/cu31924092497720 CORNELL UNIVERSITY LIBRARY 3 1924 092 497 720 SHORT STUDIES GREAT SUBJECTS. FOURTH SERIES. THE COMPLETE WORKS OF JAMES ANTHONY FROUDE, M.A. » HISTORY OF ENGLAND. CHELSEA EDITION. In half roan, gilt top, per set of twelve vols., 12mo, ........ $21.00 POPULAR EDITION. In cloth, at the rate of 81.25 per vol- ume. The set (12 vols.) in a neat box 15.00 The Same, in half oalf extra, 36.00 LIBEAEY EDITION. In twelve vols., crown 8vo., c'oth, . 30.00 The Same, in half calf extra, 60.00 SHORT STUDIES ON GREAT SUBJECTS. POPULAR EDITION. Three vols., 12mo., cloth, $1.60 per vol. The Set, $4.50 CHELSEA EDITION. Three vols., 12mo., half roan, gilt top, $2.50 per volume. Per Set 6.00 LIBEAEY EDITION. Three vols., crown Svo., cloth, $2.50 per volume. The Set, , 7.50 THE ENGLISH IN IRELAND. Three vols., crown 8vo., uniform with the Library Edition of History of England and Short Studies, clot'i. price per volume, $2.50. The Set, $7.50 Sent Post-paid f upon receipt of the price , by the PubiisherSf CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS. NEW YORK. SHORT STUDIES GREAT SUBJECTS. BT JAMES ANTHONY FEOUDE, M.A. LATS FELLOW 07 EXETBB COLLEGE, OXPOBD FOURTH SERIES. NEW YORK: CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS, 1886. All rights reserved. D.K.F 7^.;2//r7 r — RIM ELL \LJeRARY PREFACE. The present volume concludes the series which I have called •' Short Studies on Great Subjects." The topics discussed are not, indeed, all great, and some are insignifi- cant ; but I selected the title on account of the unity of pur- pose which is present throughout. The Essays have been written at intervals, as occasion or my own general work suggested, during the last thirty years, and they contain my thoughts, cast in various forms, on the problems with which the present generation has been perplexed. We have lived through a period of change — change spiritual, change moral, social, and political. The foundations of our most serious convictions have been broken up ; and the disintegration of opinion is so rapid that wise men and foolish are equally ignorant where the close of this waning century will find us. We are embarked in a cur- rent which bears us forward independent of our own wills, and indifferent whether we submit or resist ; but each of us is sailing in a boat of his own, which, as he is hurried on, he can guide or leave to drift. The observations and experiences of a single voyager who is drawing near the end of his own journey may have an interest for others who are floating down the same river, and are alike unable to conjecture whither they are bound. J, A. F. Onslow Gabdens, November 6, 1882. CONTENTS. — »-^ Life ahd Times op Thomas Becket 1 The Oxford Countek-Eefokmation 151 Origen akd Celsds 237 A Caoliostro of the Second Centitrt 282 Cheneys and the House of Russell 312 A Siding at a Railway Station 352 LIFE AND TIMES THOMAS BECKET.^ CHAPTER I. Am ong the earliest efforts of the modern sacerdotal party in the Church of England was an attempt to reestablish the memory of the martyr of Canterbury. The sacerdotal party, so for as their objects were acknowledged, aspired only to liberate the Church from bondage to the State. The choice of Becket as an object of adoration was a tacit confession of their real ambition. The theory of Becket was not that the Church had a right to self-administration, but that the Church was the supreme administrator in this world, and perhaps in the next ; that the secular sword as well as the spiritual had been delivered to Peter ; and that the civil power existed only as the delegate of Peter's suc- cessors. If it be true that the clergy are possessed in any real sense of supernatural powers ; if the " keys," as they are called, have been actually granted to them ; if through them, as the ordinary and appointed channel, the wUl of God is alone made known to mankind — then Becket was right, and the High Churchmen are right, and kings and cabinets ought to be superseded at once by commissions of 1 MateriaU for the Hiitory of Thomas Bechet, Archbishop of Canter- bui'y. Edited by James Craigie Robertson, Canon of Canterbury. Pub- Uslied under the direction of the Master of the Rolls. 1876. 2 Life and Times of bishops. If, on the other hand, the clergy are but like other orders of,.priesthoods in other ages and countries — mere human beings set apart for peculiar functions, and tempted by the nature of those functions info fantastic no- tions of their own consequence — then these recurring con- flicts between Church and State resolve themselves into phenomena of social evolution, the common sense of man- kind exerting itself to control a groundless assumption. To the student of human nature the story of sujch conflicts is always interesting — comedy and tragedy winding one into the other. They have furnished occasion for remarkable exhibitions of human character. And while Churchmen are raising up Becket as a brazen serpent, on which the world is to look to be healed of its incredulities, the incred- ulous world may look with advantage at him from its own point of view, and, if unconvinced that he was a saint, may still find instruction in a study of his actions and his fate. We take advantage, then, of the publication of new ma- terials and the republication of old materials in an accessible form to draw a sketch of Becket as he appears to ourselves ; and we must commence with an attempt to reproduce the mental condition of the times in which he lived. Human nature is said to be always the same. It is no less true that human nature is continuously changing. Motives which in one age are languid and even unintelligible have been in another alive and all-powerful. To comprehend these differences, to take them up into his imagination, to keep them present before him as the key to what he reads, is the chief difficulty and the chief duty of the student of history. Characteristic incidents, particular things which men rep- resentative of their age indisputably did, convey a clearer idea than any general description. Let the reader attend to a few transactions which occurred either in Becket's life- time or immediately subsequent to it, in which the principal Rctors were persons known to himself. Thomas Becket. 3 We select as the first a scene at Martel near Limoges in the year 1183. Henry Plantagenet, eldest; son of Henry the Second, Prince of Wales as we should now call him, called then " the young king," for he was crowned in his father's lifetime, at that spot and in that year brought his disordered existence to an end. His career had been wild and criminal. He had rebelled against his father again and again; again and again he had been forgiven. In a fit of remorse he had taken the cross, and intended to go to Jerusalem. He forgot Jerusalem in the next temptation. He joined himself to Lewis of France, broke once more into his last and worst revolt, and carried fire and sword into Normandy. He had hoped to bring the nobles to his side; he succeeded only in burning towns and churches, stripping shrines, and bringing general hatred on himself. Finding, we are told, that he could not injure his father as much as he had hoped to do, he chafed himself into a fever, and the fever killed him. Feeling death to be near, he sent a message to his father begging to see him. The old Henry, after past experience, dared not venture. The prince (I translate literally from a contemporary chronicler) — then called his bishops and religious men to his side. He con- fessed his sins first in private, then openly to all who were pres- ent. He was absolved. He gave his cross to a friend to carry to the Holy Sepulchre. Then, throwing ofE his soft clothing, he ^ut on a shirt of hair, tied a rope about his neck, and said to the bishops — " By this rope I deliver over myself, a guilty and unworthy sinner, to you the ministers of God. Through your interces- sion and of his own ineffable mercy, I beseech our Lord Jesus Christ, who forgave the thief upon the cross, to have pity on my unhappy soul." A bed of ashes had been prepared on the floor. " Drag me," he went on, "by this rope out of this bed, anci fly me on the ashes." The bishop did so. They placed at his head and at his feel two large square stones, and so he died. 4 lAfz and Times of There is one aspect of the twelfth century — the darkest crimes and the most real superstition side by side coexisting in the same character. Turn from Martel to Oxford, and go back seventeen years. Men who had so little pity on themselves were as pitiless to others. We quote from Stowe. The story is authenticated by contemporary chroniclers. 1166. There came into England thirty Germans, as well men as women, who called themselves Publicans. Their head and ruler, named Gerardus, was somewhat learned; the residue very rude. They denied matrimony and the sacraments of baptism and the Lord's Supper, with other articles. They being appre- hended, the king caused a council to be called at Oxford, where the said Gerard answered for all his fellows, who being pressed with Scripture answered concerning their faith as they had been taught, and would not dispute thereof. After they could by no means be brought from their errors, the bishop gave sentence against them, and the king commanded that they should be marked with a hot iron in the forehead and whipped, and that no man should succor them with house-room or otherwise. They took their punishment gladly, their captain going before them singing, " Blessed are ye when men hate you." They were marked both in the forehead and the chin. Thus being whipped and thrust out in winter, they died with cold, no man relieving them. To the bishops of Normandy Henry Plantagenet handed the rope to drag him to his death-bed of ashes. Undar sentence from the bishops of England these German here- tics were left to a fate more piteous than the stake. The privilege and authority of bishops and clergy was Becket's plea for convulsing Europe. What were the bishops and clergy like themselves? We will look at the bishops assembled at the Council of Westminster in the year 1176. Cardinal Hugezun had come as legate from Rome. The council was attended by the two archbishops, each accom- panied by his suffragans, the abbots, priors, and clergy of his province. Before business began, there arose diia lis et Thomas Becket. 6 eontentio, a dreadful strife and contention between these high personages as to which archbishop should sit on the cardinal's right hand. Richard of Canterbury said the right was with him. Roger of York said the right was with him. Words turned to blows. The monks of Canterbury, zealous for their master, rushed upon the Archbishop of York, flung him down, kicked him, and danced upon him till he was almost dead. The cardinal wrung his hands, and charged the Archbishop of Canterbury with having set them on. The Archbishop of York made his way, bruised and bleed- ing, to the king. Both parties in the first heat appealed to the pope. Canterbury on second thoughts repented, went privately to the cardinal, and bribed him to silence. The appeal was withdrawn, the affair dropped, and the council went on with its work. So much for the bishops. "We may add that Becket's friend John of Salisbury accuses the Archbishop of York, on common notoriety, of having committed the most infa- mous of crimes, and of having murdered the partners of his guilt to conceal it.^ As to the inferior clergy, it might be enough to quote the language used about them at the conference at Montmiraux in 1169, where their general character was said to be atro- cious, a great number of them being church-robbers, adulter- ers, highwaymen, thieves, ravishers of virgins, incendiaries, and murderers." For special illustration we take a visita- tion of St. Augustine's Abbey at Canterbury in the year 1173, undertaken by the pope's order. The visitors re- ported not only that the abbot was corrupt, extravagant, and tyrannical, but that he had more children than the pa- triarchs, in one village as many as ten or twelve bastards. 1 John of Salisbury to the Archbishop of Sens, 1171. The Archbishop if Tork is spoken of under the name of Caiaphas. ^ " Quum tainen clerici immundissimi et atrocissimi sunt, utpote qu: ex magna parte sacrilegi, adulteri. prsedones, fures, raptores virginum, in cendiarii et hoinicidx sunt." — John of Salisbury to the Bishop of Kxeter t«tters, 1169. 6 Life and Times of " Velut equus hinnit in f aminos' they said, " adeo iinpudens nt libidinem nisi quam publicaverit voluptuosam esse non reputet. Matres et earuiidem filias incestat pariter. For- nication is abusum comparat necessitati." This precious ab- bot was the host and entertainer of the four knights when they came to Canterbury. From separate pictures we pass to a sketch of the condi- tion of the Church of England written by a monk of Christ Church, Canterbury, a contemporary of Becket, when the impression of the martyrdom was fresh, and miracles were worked by his relics every day under the writer's eyes. The monk's name was Nigellus. He was precentor of the cathedral. His opinion of the wonders of which he was the witness may be inferred from the shrug of the shoulders with which, after describing the disorders of the times, he says that they were but natural, for the age of miracles was past. In reading him we feel that we are looking on the old England through an extremely keen pair of eyes. We discern too, pei'haps, that he was a clever fellow, constitu- tionally a satirist, and disappointed of promotion, and we make the necessary allowances. Two of his works survive, one in verse, the other in serious prose. The poem, which is called Speculum Slultorum ("The Looking-Glass of Fools") contains the adventures of a monk who leaves his cloister to better his fortunes. The monk is introduced under the symbolic disguise of an ass. His ambition is to grow a longer tail, and he wanders un- successfully over Europe, meeting as many misfortunes as Don Quixote, in pursuit of his object. Finally he arrives at Paris, where he resolves to remain and study, that at all events he may write after his name magister artium. The leven years' course being finished, he speculates on his fut- are career. He decides on the whole that he will be a bishop, and pictures to himself the delight of his mother *hen she sees him in his pontificals Sadly, however, he Thomas Beeket. 7 soon remembers that bishops were not made of such stuff as learned members of the universities. Bishops were born in barons' castles, and named as children to the sees which they were to occupy. " Little Bobby " and " little Willy " were carried to Rome in their nurses' arms before they could speak or walk, to have the keys of heaven committed to them. So young were they sometimes that a wit said once that it could not be told whether the bishop elect was a boy or a girl.* An abbey might suit better, he thought, and he ran over the various attractions of the different orders. All of them were more or less loose rogues, some worse, some better.* On the whole the monk-ass concluded that he would found a new order, the rules of which should be com- pounded of the indulgences allowed to each of the rest. The pope would consent if approached with the proper tempta- tions ; and he was picturing to himself the delightful life which he was thenceforth to lead, when his master found him and cudgelled him back to the stable. More instructive, if less amusing, is the prose treatise Contra Ouriales et Officiales clericos ("Against Clerical Courtiers and Oiflcials "), dedicated to De Longchamp, Bishop of Ely, Coeur de Lion's chancellor, who was left in 1 " Ante prius patrem primum matremque vocare Quam sciat, aut possit stare vel ire pedes, Suscipit ecclesise clares animasque regendas. In cunis positus dummodo vagit adhuc Cum nutrice su^ Romam Hobekimus adibit, Qaem nova sive vetus sportula tecta feret ; Missus et in peram veniet Wilekinus in urbem, Curia Romana tota videbit euin. Impnberes pueros pastores etclesiarum Vidimus effectos pontificesque sacros. Sic dixit quidam de quodam pontificando, Cum princeps regni solicitaret eum: * Est puer, et nondum discernere possumus utrum Fcemina vel mas est, et modo prajsul erit.* " Satii-ical Poems of the Taelflh Century, vol. i. p. 10& ' " Omnes sunt fures, quocunque charactere sacro Signati reniant magnif centque Deum." 8 lAfe and Times of charge of the realm when Richard went to Palestine. De Longchamp's rule was brief and stormy. It lasted long enough, however, to induce Nigellus to appeal to him for a reform of the Church, and to draw a picture of it which ad- mirers of the ages and faith may profitably study. At whatever period we get a clear view of the Church of England, it was always in terrible need of reform. In the twelfth century it has been held to have been at its best. Let us look then at the actual condition of it. According to Nigellus, the Church benefices in Englaui, almost without exception, were either sold by the patrons to the highest bidders, or Were given by them to their near relations. The presentees entered into possession more generally even than the bishops when children. Infants in cradles (says Nigellus) are made archdeacons, that out of the mouths of babes and sucklings praise may be per- fected. The child is still at the breast and he is a priest of the Church. He can bind and loose before he can speak, and has the keys of heaven before he has the use of his understanding. At an age when an apple is more to him than a dozen churches, he is set to dispense the sacraments, and the only anxiety about him is a fear that he may die. He is sent to no school. He is idle and is never whipped. He goes to Paris to be polished, where he learns " the essentials of a gentleman's education," dice and dominoes, et ccBtera quce sequuntur. He returns to Eng- land to hawk and hunt, and would that this were the worst I but he has the forehead of a harlot, and knows not to be ashamed. To such persons as these a bishop without scruple commits the charge of souls — to men who are given over to the flesh, who rise in the morning to eat, and sit down at evening to drink, who spend on loose women the offerings of the faithful, who do things which make their people blush to speak of them, while the/ themselves look for the Jordan to flow into their mouths, and expect each day to hear a voice say to them, " Friend, go up higher." Those who had no money to buy their way with, and no friends to help them, were obliged tp study something Thomas Becket. 9 Having done with Paris they would go on to Bologna, and some back knowing medicine and law and speaking pure French and Italian. Clever fellows, so furnished, contrived to rise by pushing themselves into the service of bishop or baron, to whom " they were as eyes to the blind and as feet to the lame." They managed the great man's business; they took care of his health. They went to Rome with his appeals, undertook negotiations for him in foreign courts, and were repaid in time by prebends and rectories. Others, in spite of laws of celibacy, married a patron's daughter, and got a benefice along with her. It was illegal, but the bishops winked at it. Others made interest at Rome with the cardinals, and by them were recommended home. Others contrived to be of use to the king. Once on the road to preferment the ascent was easy. The lucky ones, not content with a church or two, would have a benefice in every diocese in England, and would lie, cheat, " forget God, and not remember man." Their first gains were spent in bribes to purchase more, and nothing could satisfy them. Fifteen or twenty rectories were not enough without a stall in each cathedral. Next must come a deanery, and then an archdeaconry, and then "peradventure God will yet add nnto me something more." The " something more " was of course a bishopric, and Nigellus proceeds to describe the methods by which such of these high offices were reached as had not been already as- signed to favorites. The prelates expectant hung about the court, making presents, giving dinners, or ofiering their ser- vices for difficult foreign embassies. Their friends meanwhile were on the watch for sees likely to be vacant, and inquir- ing into their values. The age and health of the present occupants were diligently watched ; the state of their teeth, their eyes, their stomachs, and reported disorders. If the accounts were conflicting, the aspirant would go himself to the spot under pretence of a pilgrimage. If the wretched bishop was found inconveniently vigorous, rumors were 10 lAfe and Times of spread that he was shamming youth, that he was as old ag Nestor, and was in his dotage ; if he was infirm, it was said that men ought not to remain in positions of which they could not discharge the duties ; they should go into a clois- ter. The king and the primate should see to it. If intrigue failed, another road was tried. The man of the world became a saint. He retired to one or other of his churches. He was weary of the earth and its vanities, and desired to spend his remaining days in meditating upon heaven. The court dress was laid aside. The wolf clothed himself in a sheepskin, and the talk was only of prayers and ostentatious charities. Beggars were fed in the streets, the naked were clothed, the sick were visited, the dead were buried. The rosy face grew pale, the plump cheeks be- came thin, and the admiring public exclaimed, " Who was like unto this man to keep the law of the Most High ? " Finally some religious order was entered in such a manner that it should be heard of everywhere. Vows were taken with an affectation of special austerities. The worthy per- son (who cannot see and hear him ?) would then bewail the desolations of the Church, speak in a low sad voice, sigh, walk slowly, and droop his eyelids ; kings were charged with tyranny, and priests with incontinency, and all this that it might be spoken of in high places, that, when a see was vacant at last, it might be said to him, " Friend, go up higher ; ' he that humbleth himself shall be exalted.' " " Such," said Nigellus, " are the steps in our days by which men go up into the house of the Lord." By one or other of these courses success was at last attained ; the recom- mendation of the Crown was secured, and the nomination was sent to the chapter. But the eongi delire was not yet peremptory. The forms of liberty still retained some shadow of life in them, and fresh efforts were required to obtain the consent of the electors. The religious orders were the persons used on these occasions to produce the re- quired effect; and flights of Templars, Cistercians, Carthu- Thomas Bechet. 11 BiaDs, hurried to the Cathedral dty to persuade the canons that the pastor whom they had never seen or never heard of, except by rumor, had more virtues than existed together in any other human being. Nigellus humorously describes the language in which these spiritual jackals portrayed their patron's merits. He is a John the Baptist for sanctity, a Cato for wisdom, a Tully for eloquence, a Moses for meekness, a Fhineas for zeal, an Abraham for faith. Elect him only, and he is all that you can desire. You ask what he has done to recommend him. Granted that he has done nothing, God can raise sons to Abra- ham out of the stones. He is a boy, you say, and too young for such an office ; Daniel was a boy when he saved Susannah from the elders. He is of low birth ; you are choosing a succes- sor to a fisherman, not an heir to Cssar. He is a dwarf; Jere- miah was not large. He is illiterate ; Peter and Andrew were not philosophers when they were called to be apostles. He can speak no English ; Augustine could speak no EngUsh, yet Au- gustine converted Britain. He is married and has a wife ; the apostles ordered such to be promoted. He has divorced his wife ; Christ separated St. John from his bride. He is immoral ; so was St. Boniface. He is a fool; God has chosen the foolish things of this world to confound the wise. He is a coward; St. Joseph was a coward. He is a glutton and a wine-bibber ; so Christ was said to be. He is a sluggard ; St. Peter could not remain for an hour awake. He is a striker; Peter struck Malchus. He is quarrelsome ; Paul quarreled with Barnabas. He is disobedient to his superiors; Paul withstood Peter. He is a man of blood; Moses killed the Egyptian. He is blind; so was Paul before he was converted. He is dumb; Zacharias was dumb. He is all faults, and possesses not a single virtue; God will make his grace so much more to abound in him. Such eloquence and such advocates were generally irre- sistible. If, as sometimes happened, the Crown had named a person exceptionally infamous, or if the chapter was ex- ceptionally obdurate, other measures lay behind. Govern- ment officers would come down and talk of enemies to the commonwealth. A bishop of an adjoining see would hint 12 Life and Times of at excommunication. The canons were worked on sep* arately, bribed, coaxed, or threatened. The younger of them were promised the places of the seniors. The seniors were promised fresh offices for themselves, and promotion for their relations. If there were two candidates and two parties, both sides bribed, and the longest purse gained the day. Finally the field was won. Decent members of the chapter sighed over the disgrace, but reflected that miracles could not be looked for.^ The see could not remain vacant till a saint could be found to fill it. They gave their voices as desired. The choice was declared, the bells rang, the organ pealed, and the choir chanted Te Deum. The one touch necessary to complete the farce was then added : — The bishop elect, all in tears for joy, exclaims, " Depart from me, for I am a sinful man. Depart from me, for I am unworthy. I cannot bear the burden which you lay upon me. Alas for my calamity I Let me alone, my beloved brethren — let me alone in my humble state. You know not what you do." .... He falls back and affects to swoon. He is borne to the arch- bishop to be consecrated. Other bishops are summoned to assist, and all is finished.^ The scene now changed. The object was gained, the mask was dropped, and the bishop, having reached the goal of his ambition, could afibrd to show himself in his true colors. He has bound himself (goes on Nigellus) to be a teacher of his flock. How can he teach those whom he sees but once a year, and not a hundredth part of whom he even sees at all? If any one in the diocese wants the bishop, he is told the bishop is at court on affairs of state. He hears a hasty mass once a 1 "Non sunt haec miraculorum tempora.'' ' Now and then it happened that bishops refused to attend on thesa occasions, when the person to be consecrated was notoriously infamous. Nigellua says that one bishop at least declined to assist at the consecra. Hon of Boger, Archbishop of York. Thomas Bechet. 13 day, non sine tcedio (not without being bored). The rest ot his time he gives to business or pleasure, and is not bored. The rich get justice from him;, the poor get no justice. If his met- ropolitan interferes with him, he appeals to Kome, and Rome protects him if he is willing to pay for it. At Rome the abbot buys his freedom from the control of the bishop ; the bishop buys his freedom from the control of the archbishop. The bishop dresses as the knights dress. When his cap is on you cannot distinguish him at council from a peer. The layman swears, the bishop swears, and the bishop swears the hardest. The layman hunts, the bishop hunts. The layman hawks, the bishop hawks. Bishop and layman sit side by side at council and Treasury boa,rds. Bishop and layman ride side by side into battle.^ What will not bishops do? Was ever crime more atrocious than that which was lately committed in the church at Coventry ? ^ When did pagan ever deal with Christian as the bishop did with the monks? I, Nigellus, saw with my own eyes, after the monks were ejected, harlots openly introduced into the cloister and chapter house to lie all night there, as in a brothel, with their paramours.' Such are the works of bishops in these days of ours. This is what they do, or permit to be done; and so cheap has grown the dignity of the ecclesiastical order that you will easier find a cowherd well educated than a presbyter, and an industrious duck than a literate parson. So far Nigellus. We are not to suppose that the state of the Church had changed unfavorably in the twenty years 1 Even in the discharge of their special functions the spiritual character was scarcely more apparent. When they went on visitation, and children were brought to them to be confirmed, they gave a general blessing and did not so much as alight from their horses. Becket was the only prelate who obsen^ed common decency on these occasions. *'Non enim erat ei at plerisque, immo ut fere omnibus episcopis nioris est, ministerium con firmationis equo insidendo peragere, sed ob sacramenti venerationem equo desilire et stando pueris manum imponere." — MatetnaU for the History of Tkomag Bechet, vol. ii. p. 164. ■' In the year 1191, Hugh, Bishop of Coventry, violently expelled the monks from the cathedral there, and instituted canons in their places. * " TesUa mihi Deus est quod dolens et tristis admodum refero quod in ecclesi^ Coventrensi oculis propriis aspexi. In claustro et capitulo vidi ego et alii nonnulli ejectis monachis meretrices pnblice introductas et totd nocte cum lenonibus decubare sicut in lupanari." 14 Life and Times of which followed Becket's martyrdom, or we should have to conclude that the spiritual enthusiasm which the martyrdom undoubtedly excited had injured, and not improved, public morality. The prelates and clergy with whom Henry the Second contended, if different at all from those of the next genera- tion, must have been rather worse than better, and we cease to be surprised at the language in which the king spoke of them at Montmiraux. Speaking generally, at the time when Eecket declared war against the State, the Church, from the Vatican to the smallest archdeaconry, was saturated with* venality. The bishops were mere men of the world. The Church bene- fices were publicly bought and sold, given away as a provi- sion to children, or held in indefinite numbers by ambitious men who cared only for wealth and power. The mass of the common clergy were ignorant, dissolute, and lawless, unable to be legally married, and living with concubines in contempt or evasion of their own rules. In character and conduct the laity were superior to the clergy. They had wives, and were therefore less profligate. They made no pretensions to mysterious power and responsibilities, and therefore they were not hypocrites. They were violent, they were vicious, yet they had the kind of belief in the truth of religion which bound the rope about young Henry's neck and dragged him from his bed to die upon the ashes, which sent them in tens of thousands to perish on the Syr- ian sands to recover the sepulchre of Christ from the infi- del. The life beyond the grave was as assured to them as the life upon earth. In the sacraments and in the priest's absolution lay the one hope of escaping eternal destruction. And while they could feel no respect for the clergy as men, they feared their powers and reverenced their office. Both of laity and clergy the religion was a superstition, but in the laity the superstition was combined with reverence, and implied a real belief in the divine authority which it sym- Thomas Becket. 15 bolized. The clergy, the supposed depositaries of the su- pernatural qualities assigned to them, found it probably more diflBcult to believe in themselves, and the unreality re- venged itself upon their natures. Bearing in mind these qualities in the two orders, we proceed to the history of Becket. 16 lAfe and !Kme8 of CHAPTER IL Thomas Beckkt was bom in London in the year 1118.* His father, Gilbert Becket, was a citizen in moderate cir- cumstances.^ His name denotes Saxon extraction. Few Normans as yet were to be found in the English towns con- descending to trade. Of his mother nothing authentic is known,' except that she was a religious woman who brought up her children in the fear of God. Many anecdotes are related of his early years, but the atmosphere of legend in which his history was so early enveloped renders them aU suspicious. His parents, at any rate, both died when he was still very young, leaving him, ill provided for, to the care of his father's friends. One of them, a man of wealth, Richard de I'Aigle, took charge of the tall, handsome, clever lad. He was sent to school at Merton Abbey, in Surrey, and afterwards to Oxford. . In his vacations he was thrown among young men of rank and fortune, hunting and hawk- ing with them, cultivating his mind with the ease of con- scious ability, and doubtless not inattentive to the events which were going on around him. In his nursery he must have heard of the sinking of the White Ship in the Chan- nel with Henry the First's three children. Prince William, his brother Richard, and their sister. When he was seven years old, he may have listened to the jests of the citizens 1 Or 1117. The exact date is uncertain. 2 "Nee omnino infimi" are Becket's words as to the rank of hia parents. 8 The story that she was a Saracen is a late legend. Becket was after- wards taunted with thelowness of his birth. The absence of any allusion to a fact so curious if it was true, either in the taunt or in Becket's reply to it, may be taken as conclusive. Thomas Becket. 17 at his father's table over the misadventure in London of the cardinal legate, John of Crema. The legate had come to England to preside at a council and pass laws to part the clergy from their wives. While the council was going forward, his Eminence was himself detected in re meretricid, to general astonishment and scandal. In the same year the Emperor Henry died. Flis widow, the English Matilda, came home, and was married again soon after to Geoffrey of Aiijou. In 1134 the English barons swore fealty to her and her young son, afterwards King Henry the Second. The year following her father died. Her cousin, Stephen of Blois, broke his oath and seized the crown, and general distraction and civil war followed, while from beyond the seas the Levant ships, as they came up the river, brought news of bloody battles in Syria and slaughter of Christians and infidels. To live in stirring times is the best education of a youth of intellect. After spending three years in a bouse of business in the city, Becket contrived to recom- mend himself to Theobald, Archbishop of Canterbury. The archbishop saw his talents, sent him to Paris, and thence to Bologna to study law, and employed him afterwards in the most confidential negotiations. The description by Nigellus of the generation of a bishop might have been copied line for line from Becket's history. The question of the day was the succession to the crown. Was Stephen's son, Eustace, the heir ? Or was Matilda's sou, Henry of Anjou ? Theo- bald was for Henry, so far as he dared to show himself. Becket was sent secretly to Rome to move the pope. The struggle ended with a compromise. Stephen was to reign for his life. Henry was peaceably to follow him. The arrangement might have been cut again by the sword. But Eustace immediately afterwards died. In the same year Stephen followed him, and Henry the Second became king of England. With all these intricate negotiations the fut- ure mai'tyr was intimately connected, and by his remarkable *alents especially recommended himself to the new king. 2 18 lAfe and TimeB of No one called afterwards to an important position had bettei opportunities of acquainting himself with the spirit of the age, or tlie characters of the principal actors in it.' li his services were valuable, his reward was magnificent. He was not a priest, but again precisely as Nigellus describet^ he was loaded with lucrative church benefices. He was Provost of Beverley, he was Archdeacon of Canterbury, ho was rector of an unknown number of parishes, and had stalls in several cathedrals. It is noticeable that afterwards, in the heat of the battle in which he earned his saintship, he was so far from looking back with regret on this accumula- tion of preferments that he paraded them as an evidence of his early consequence.^ A greater rise lay immediately before him. Henry the Second was twenty-two years old at his accession. At this time he was the most powerful prince in Western Europe. He was Duke of Normandy and Count of Anjou. His wife Eleanor, the divorced queen of Lewis of France, bad brought with her Aquitaine and Poitou. The reigning pope, Adrian the Fourth, was an Englisliman, and, to the grief and perplexity of later gene- rations of Irishmen, gave this new king permission to add the Island of the Saints to his already vast dominions. Over Scotland the English monarchs asserted a semi-feudal sovereignty, to which Stephen, at the battle of the Standard, had given a semblance of reality. Few English princes ' Very strange things were continually happening. In 1154 the A;ch- bishop of York was poisoned in the Eucharist by some of his clergy, *Eodem anno Wilhelmus Eboracensis archiepiscopus, proditione clerico- lum suoruiii post perceptionem Eucharistiae infra ablutiones liquore Icthali infectus, extinctus est." (Hoveden, vol. i. p. 213.) Becket could not tail CO have heard of this piece of villainy and to have made his own reflecticQa upon it. * Foliot, Bishop of London, told him that he owed his rise in life to the king. Becket replied : " Ad tempus quo me rex niinisterio suo prsestitit, archidiacoiiatus Cantuaiensis, prafpositura Beverlaci, plurimse ecclesiae, pra> bendae nonnulte, alia etiam non pauca quae nominis mei erant possessio tunc temporia, adeo tcnuein ut dicis, quantum ad ea quae mundi sunt coa- tradicunt me fuisse." Thomas Becket. 19 have commenced their career with fairer prospects than the second Henry. The state of England itself demanded his first attention. The usurpation of Stephen had left behind it a legacy of disorder. The authority of the Crown had been shaken. The barons, secure behind the walls of their castles, limited their obedience by their inclinations. Tlie Church, an im- ■perium in imperio, however corrupt in practice, was aggres- sive as an institution, and was encroaching on the State with organized system. The principles asserted by Greg- ory the Seventh had been establishing themselves grad- ually for the past century, and in theory were no longer questioned. The power of the Crown, it was freely ad- mitted, was derived from God. As little was it to be doubted that the clergy were the ministers of God in a nearer and higher sense than a layman could pretend to be, holding as they did the power of the keys, and able to pun- ish disobedience by final exclusion from heaven. The prin- ciple was simple. The application only was intricate. The clergy, though divine as an order, were as frail in their in- dividual aspect as common mortals, as ambitious, as worldly, as licentious, as unprincipled, as violent, as wicked, as much needing the restraint of law and the policeman as their sec- ular brethren, perhaps needing it more. How was the law to be brought to bear on a class of persons who claimed to be superior to law ? King Henry's piety was above sus- picion, but he was at all points a sovereign, especially im- patient of anarchy. The conduct of too many ecclesiastics, regular and secular alike, was entirely intolerable, and a natural impatience was spreading through the country, with which the king perhaps showed early symptoms of sym- pathizing. Archbishop Theobald, at any rate, was uneasy al the part which he might take, and thought that he needed some one at his side to guide him in salutary courses. At Theobald's instance, iu the second year of Henry's reign, Becket became Chancellor of England, being then thirty- leven years old. 20 Life and Times of In his new dignity he seemed at first likely to disappoint the archbishop's expectations of him. Some of his biog- raphers, indeed, claim as his. perpetual merit that he op- posed the hestias curia, or court wild beasts, as churchmen called the anticlerical party. John of Salisbury, (n the other hand, describes him as'a magnificent tritlei, a sconier of law and the clergy, and given to scurrilous jesting at laymen's parties.^ At any rate, except in the arbitrariness of his character, he showed no features of the Becket of Catholic tradition. Omnipotent as Wolsey after him, he was no less magni- ficent in his outward bearing. His dress was gorgeo js, his retinue of knights as splendid as the king's. His hospitaJ- ties were boundless. His expenditure was enormous. How the means for it were supplied is uncertain. The revenue was wholly in his hands. The king was often on the conti- nent, and at such times the chancellor governed everything. He retained his Church benefices — the archdeaconry of Canterbury certainly, and probably the rest. Vast sums fell irregularly into Chancery from wardships and vacant sees and abbeys. All this Becket received, and never ac- counted for the whole of them. Whatever might be the explanation, the wealthiest peer in P^ngland did not main- tain a more costly household, or appear in public with a more princely surrounding. Of his administration his adoring and admiring biog- rapher, the monk Grim, who was present at his martyr- dom, draws a more than unfavorable picture, and even charges him with cruelty and ferocity. "The persons that he slew," says Grim, '' the persons that he robbed of their property, no one can enumerate. Attended by a large com- jiany of knights, he would assail whole communities, destroy 1 " Dum magnific is erat nugator in curia, dum legis videbatur con- emptor et cleri, dum scurriles, cum potentioribus sectabatur isepiias, mag nus habebatur, clarus erat et acceptus omnibus." — John of Salisbury tc he Bishop of Exeter. Letters, 1166. Thomas Bechet. 21 cities and towns, villages and farms, and, without remorse or pity, would give them to devouring flames." ' Such words give a new aspect to the demand afterwards made that he should answer for his proceedings as chancel- lor, and lend a new meaning to his unwillingness to reply. At this period the only virtue which Grim allows him to have preserved unsullied was his chastity. In foreign politics he was meanwhile as much engaged as ever. The anomalous relations of the king with Lewis the Seventh, whose vassal he was for his continental dominions, while he was his superior in power, were breaking continu- ally into quarrels, and sometimes into war. The anxiety of Henry, however, was always to keep the peace, if possible. In 1157 Becket was sent to Paris to negotiate an alliance between the Princess Margaret, Lewis's daughter, and Henry's eldest son. The prince was then seven years old. the little lady was three. Three years later they 'were actually married, two cardinals, Henry of Pisa and William of Pavia, coming as legates from the pope to be present on the august occasion. France and England had been at that time drawn together by a special danger which threatened Christendom. In 1159 Pope Adrian died. Alexander the Third was chosen to succeed him with the usual formalities, but the election was challenged by Frederic Barbarossa, who set up an antipope. The Catholic Church was split in two. Frederic invaded Italy, Alexander was driven out of Rome and took shelter in France at Sens. Henry and Lewis gave him their united support, and forgot their own quarrels in the common cause. Henry, it was universally admitted, was heartily in earnest for Pope Alexander. The pope, on his part, professed a willingness and an anx- iety to be of corresponding service to Henry. The king 1 "Quantis aiitem necem, quantis rerum omnium proscriptionem intu- lerit, quis enumeret? Valida namque stipatus militum manu civitates ag- ^essus est. Delevit urbes et oppida; villas et praedia absque miserationis tntuitu voraci consumpsit incendio." — Materials Jbr the Histm'y of Thomoi iBecket, vol. ii. pp. 364, 365. 22 lAfe and Times of oon^dered the moment a favorable one for taking in hand the reform of the clergy, not as against the Holy See, but with the Holy See in active cooperation with him. On this side he anticipated no difficulty if he could find a proper instrument at home, and that instrument he considered him- self to possess in his chancellor. Where the problem was to reconcile the rights of the clergy with the law of the land, it would be convenient, even essential, that the chan- cellorship and the primacy should be combined in the same person. Barbarossa was finding the value of such a combi- nation in Germany, where, with the Archbishop of Cologne for a chancellor of the Empire, he was carrying out an ec- clesiastical revolution. It is not conceivable that on a subject of such vast im- portance the king should have never taken the trouble to ascertain Becket's views. The condition of the clergy was a pressing and practical perplexity. Becket was his confi- dential minister, the one person whose advice he most sought in any difficulty, and on whose judgment he most re- lied. Becket, in all probability, must have led the king to believe that he agreed with him. There can be no doubt whatever that he must have allowed the king to form his plans without having advised him against them, and without having cautioned him that from himself there was to be looked for nothing but opposition. The king, in fact, ex- pected no opposition. So far as he had known Becket hitherto, he had known him as a statesman and a man of the world. If Becket had ever in this capacity expressed views unfavorable to the king's intentions, he would not have failed to remind him of it in their subsequent contro- versy. That he was unable to appeal for such a purpose to Jie king's recollection must be taken as a proof that he never did express unfavorable views. If we are not to sup- pose that he was deliberately insincere, we may believe that he changed his opinion in consequence of the German ichism. But even so an honorable man would have given Thomas Becket. 23 nis master warning of the alteration, and It is certain that he did not. He did, we are told, feel some scruples. The ecclesiastical conscience had not wlioUy destroyed the hu- man conscience, and the king had been a generous master to him. But his difficulties were set aside by the casuistries of a Roman legate. Archbishop Tlieobald died when the two cardinals were in Normandy for the marriage of Prince Henry and the Princess Margaret. There was a year of delay before the choice was finally made. Becket asked the advice of Cardinal Henry of Pisa. Cardinal Henry told him that it was for the interest of the Church that he should accept the archbishopric, and that he need not com- municate convictions which would interfere with his ap- pointment. They probably both felt that, if Becket de- clined, the king would find some other prelate who would be more pliant in his hands. Thus at last the decision was arrived at. The Empress Matilda warned her son against Becket's dangerous character, but the warning was in vain. The king pressed the ai-chbishopric on Becket, and Becket accepted it. The Chief Justice Richard de Luci went over with three bishops to Canterbury in the spring of 1162 to gain the consent of the chapter ; the chapter yielded not without reluctance. The clergy of the province gave their acquiescence at a council held afterwards at Westminster, but with astonishment, misgiving, and secret complaints. Becket at this time was not even a priest, and was known only to the world as an unscrupulous and tyrannical minis- ter. The consent was given, however. The thing was done. On the 2d of June (1162) Becket received his j'riest's orders from the Bishop of Rochester. On the 3d be iras consecrated in his own cathedral. 24 lAfe and Timet of CHAPTER ni. Becket was now forty-four years old. The king was thirty. The ascendency which Becket had hitherto exer- cised over his sovereign through the advantage of age was necessarily diminishing as the king came to maturity, and the two great antagonists, as they were henceforth to be, were more fairly matched than Becket perhaps expected to find them. Tlie archbishop was past the time of life at which the character can be seriously changed. After forty men may alter their opinions, their policy, and their con- duct ; but they rarely alter their dispositions ; and Becket remained as violent, as overbearing, as ambitious, as un- scrupulous, as he had shown himself when chancellor, though the objects at which he was henceforth to aim were entirely different. It would be well for his memory were it possible to credit liim with a desire to reform the Church of which he was the head, to purge away the corruption of it, to punish himself the moral disorders of the clergy, while he denied the rigl.t to punish them to the State. We seek in vain, however, for the slighest symptoms of any such desire. Throughout his letters there is not the faintest consciousness that anything was amiss. He had been him- self amongst the grossest of pluralists ; so far from being ashamed of it, he still aimed at retaining the most lucrative of his benefices. The idea with which his mind was filled was not the purity of the Church, but the privilege and supremacy of the Church. As chancellor he had been at the head of the Statfi under the king. As archbishop, in the name of the Church, he intended to be head both of State and king ; to place the pope, and himself as the TJiomaa Beeket. 25 pope's legate, in the position of God's vicegerents. When he found it written that " by me Icings reign and princes decree judgment," he appropriated the language to liimself, and his single aim was to convert the words thus construed into reality. The first public intimation which Beeket gave of his in- tentions was hLs resignation of the chancellorship. He had been made archbishop that the offices might be combined ; he was no sooner consecrated than he informed the king that the duties of his sacred calling left him no leisure for secular business. He did not even wait for Henry's return from Normandy. He placed the great seal in the hands of the chief justice, the young prince, and the barons of the Exchequer, demanding and receiving from them a hurried discharge of his responsibilities. The accounts, for all that appears, were never examined. Grim, perhaps, when ac- cusing him of rapine and murder, was referring to a sup- pression of a disturbance in Aquitaine, not to any spjcia act of which he was guilty in England ; but the unsparing ruthlessiiess which he displayed on that occasion was ai indication of the disposition which was displayed in all that he did, and he was wise in anticipating inquiry. The king had not recovered from his surprise at such unwelcome news when he learned that his splendid min- ister had laid aside his magnificence and had assumed the habit of a monk, that he was always in tears — tears which flowed from him with such miraculous abundance as to evi- dence the working in him of some special grace,' or else of some special purpose. His general conduct at Canterbury was equally startling. One act of charity, indeed, he had overlooked which neither in conscience nor prudence should have been forgotten. The mother of Pope Adrian the Fourth was living somewhere in his province in extreme 1 "Ut putaretur possessor irrigui superioris et inferioris." The "supe- rior" fountain of tears was the love of God ; the "inferior" was the feai if hell. 26 Life and Times of poverty, starving, it was said, of cold and hunger. The see of Canterbury, as well as England, owed much to Pope Adrian, and Becket's neglect of a person who was at least entitled to honorable maintenance was not unobserved at Rome. Otherwise his generosity was profuse. Archbishop Theobald had doubled the charities of his predecessor, Becket doubled Theobald's. Mendicants swarmed about the gates of the palace ; thirteen of them were taken iu daily to have their dinners, to have their feet washed by the archiepiscopal hands, and to be dismissed each with a silver penny in his pocket. The tears and the benevolent humiliations were familiar in aspirants after high church offices ; but Becket had nothing more to gain. What could be the meaning of so sudden and so startling a trans- formation ? Was it penitence for his crimes as chancellor ? The tears looked like penitence ; but there were other symptoms of a more aggressive kind. He was no sooner in liis seat than he demanded the restoration of estates that his predecessors had alienated. He gave judgment in his own court in his own favor, and enforced his own decrees. Knights holding their lands from the Church on military tenure had hitherto done homage for them to the Crown. The new archbishop demanded the homage for himself. He required the Earl of Clare to swear fealty to him for Tunbridge Castle. The Earl of Clare refused and appealed to the king, and the archbishop dared not at once strike so large a quarry. But he showed his teeth with a smaller offender. Sir Willliam Eynesford, one of the king's knights, was patron of a benefice in Kent. The archbishop presented a priest to it. The knight ejected the archbishop's nominee, and the archbishop excommuni- cated the knight. Such peremptory sentences, pronounced without notice, had a special inconvenience when directed against persons immediately about the king. Excommuni- cation was lilce the plague ; whoever came near the infected body himself caught the contagion, and the king might be Thomas Bechet. 27 poisoned without his knowledge. It had been usual in these cases to pay the king the courtesy of consulting him. Becket, least cf all men, could have pleaded ignorance ol such a custom. It seemed that he did not choose to ob- serve it.* While courting the populace, and gaining a reputation as a saint among the clergy, the archbishop was asserting his secular authority, and using the spiritual Bword to enforce it. Again, what did it mean, this inter- ference with the rights of the laity, this ambition for a personal following of armed knights ? Becket was not a dreamer who had emerged into high place from the cloister or the library. He was a man of the world intimately acquainted with the practical problems of the day, the most unlikely of all persons to have adopted a course so marked without some ulterior purpose. Henry discovered too late that his mother's eyes had been keener than his own. He returned to England in the beginning of 1163. Becket met liira at his landing, but was coldly received. In the summer of the same year. Pope Alexander held a council at Tours. The £^nglish prelates attended. The question of precedence was not this time raised. The Arch- jishoj) of Canterbury and his suffragans sat on the pope's right hand, the Archbishop of York and his suffragans sat on the pope's left. Whether anything of consequence passed on this occasion between the pope and Becket is not known : probably not ; it is certain, however, that thev met. On the archbishop's return to England the disputes between the secular and spiritual authorities broke into open conflict. The Church principles of Gregory the Seventh were 1 " Quod, quia rege minime certiorato archiepiscopus fccisset, maxi- mam ejus indignationem incurrit. Asserit eniin rex juxta dignitatem ■egni sui, quod nullus qui de rege teneat in capite vel minister ejus citra ipsius conscJentiam sit excommuni";andus al> aliquo, ne si iioc regem lateat lapsu.s ignorantia comniunicet excommunicato ; coniitem vel baronem ad «e vinientem in osculo vel consilio adraittat." — Matthew Paris, Chronica Unj-fn, vol. ii. p. 222. 28 Life and Times of making their way through Europe, but yere making their way with extreme slowness. Though the celibacy of the clergy had been decreed by law, clerical concubinage was still the rule in England. A focaria and a family were still to be found in most country parsonages. In theory the priesthood was a caste. In practice priests and their flocks were united by common interests, common pursuits, com- mon virtues, and common crimes. The common law of P^iiglaiid during the reigns of the Conqueror's sons had re- fused to distinguish between them. Clerks guilty of robbery or murder had been tried like other felons in the ordinary courts, and if found guilty had suffered the same punish- ments. The new pretension was that they were a peculiar order, set apart for God's service, not amenable to secular jurisdiction, and liable to trial only in the spiritual courts. Under the loose administration of Stephen the judges had begun to recognize their immunity, and the conduct of the lower class of clergy was in consequence growing daily more intoleiable. Clergy, indeed, a great many of them had no title to be called. They had received only some minor form of orders, of which no sign was visible in their appearance or conduct. They were clerks only so far as they held benefices and claimed special privileges ; for the rest, they hunted, fought, drank, and gambled like other idle gentlemen. j In the autumn of 1163 a specially gross case of clerical offence brought the question to a crisis. Philip de Broi, a young nobleman who held a canonry at Bedford, had killed some one in a quarrel. He was brought before the court of the Bishop of Lincoln, where he made his purgation ecclesiastico jure — that is to say, he paid the usual fees and perhaps a small fine. The relations of the dead man declared themselves satisfied, and Philip lie Broi was acquitted. The Church and the relations might be satisfied ; public justice was not satisfied. The sheriff of Bedfordshire declined to recognize the decision Thomas Bechet. 29 and summoned the canon a second time. The canon in suited the sheriff in open court, and refused to plead before him. The sheriff referred the matter to the king. The king sent for Philip de Broi, and cross-questioned him in Becket's presence. It was not denied that he had killed a man. The king inquired what Becket was prepared to do. Becket's answer, for the present and all similar cases, was that a clerk in orders-accused of felony must be tried in the first instance in an ecclesiastical court, and punished accord- ing to ecclesiastical law. If the crime was found to be of peculiarly dark kind, the accused might be deprived of his orders, and, if he again offended, should lose his privilege. But for the offence for which he was deprived he was not to be again tried or again punished ; the deprivation itself was to suffice. The kiug, always moderate, was unwilling to press the question to extremity. He condemned the judgment of the Bishop of Lincoln's court. He insisted that the murderer should have a real trial. But he appointed a mixed com- mission of bishops and laymen to try him, the bishops hav- ing the preponderating voice. Philip de Broi pleaded that he had made his purgation in the regular manner, that he had made his peace with the family of the man that he had killed, and that the matter was thus ended. He apologized for having insulted the ehei-iff, and professed himself willing to make reasonable reparation. The sentence of the commission was that his benefices should be sequestered for two years, and that, if the sheriff insisted upon it, he should be flogged. So weak a judgment showed Henry the real value of Becket's theory. The criminal clerk was to be amenable to the law as soon as he has been degraded, not before ; and it was perfectly plain, that clerks never would be degraded. They might commit murder upon mui-der, robbery upon robbery, and the law would be unable to touch them. It could not be. Th3 king insisted that a sacred professiou 30 Life and Times of should not be used as a screen for the protection of felony. He summoned the whole body of the bishops to meet him in a council at Westminster in October. The council met. The archbishop was resolute. He replied for the other bishops in an absolute refusal to make any concession. The judges and the laity generally were growing excited. Had the clergy been saints, the claims advanced for them would have been scarcely tolerable. Being what they were, such pretensions were ridiculous. Becket might speak in their name. He did not speak their real opinions. Arnulf, Bishop of Lisieux, came over to use his influence with Becket, but he found him inexorable. To risk the peace of the Church in so indefensible a quarrel seemed obstinate folly. The Bishop of Lisieux and severs! of the English prelates wrote privately to the pope to en- treat him to interfere. Alexander had no liking for Becket. He had known him long, and had no belief in the lately assumed airs of sanctity. Threatened as he was by the emperor and the antipope, he had no disposition to quarrel with Henry, nor in the pai-ticular question at issue does he seem to have thought the archbishop in the right. On the spot he dis- patched a legate, a monk named Philip of Aumone, to tell Becket that he must obey the laws of the realm, and submit to the king's pleasure. The king was at Woodstock. The archbishop, thus com- manded, could not refuse to obey. He repaired to the court. He gave his promise. He undertook, bond fide at sine malo ingenio, to submit to the laws of the land, what- ever they might be found to be. But a vague engagement of this kind was unsatisfactory, and might afterwards be evaded. The question of the immunities of the clergy had been publicly raised. The attention of the nation had been called to it. Once for all the position in which the clergy were to stand to the law of the land must be clearly and finally laid down. The judges had been directed to inquire Thomas Becket. 81 into the customs which had been of use in England under the king's grandfather, Henry the First. A second council was called to meet at Clarendon, near Winchester, in the following January, when these customs, reduced to writing, would be placed in the archbishops' and bishops' hands, and they would be required to consent to them in detail. The spiritual power had encroached on many sides, li/ery question, either of person, conduct, or property, in which an ecclesiastic was a party, the Church courts had endeavored to reserve for themselves. Being judges in their own causes, the decisions of the clergy were more sat- isfactory to themselves than to the laity. The practice of appealing to Rome in every cause in which a churchman was in any way connected had disorganized the whole course of justice. The Constitutions (as they were called) of Clar- endon touched in detail on a variety of points on which the laity considered themselves injured. The general provi- sions embodied in these famous resolutions would now be scarcely cliallenged in the most Catholic country in the world. 1. During the vacancy of any archbishopric, bishopric, abbey, or priory of royal foundation, the estates were to be in the custody of the Crown. Elections to these prefer- ments were to be held in the royal chapel, with the assent of the king and council. 2. In every suit to which a clerk was a party, proceed- ings were to commence before the king's justices, and these justices were to decide whether the case was to be tried be- fore a spiritual or a civil court. If it was referred to a spir- itual court, a civil officer was to attend to watch the trial, and if a clerk was found guilty of felony the Church was to cease to protect him. , 3. No tenarit-in-chief of the king, or officer of his house- iold, was to be excommunicated, or his lands laid under an interdict, until application had been first made to the king, )r, in his absence, to the chief justice. 32 lAfi and Times of 4. Laymen were not to be indicted in a bishop's comt, either for perjury or other similar offence, except in the bisliop's presence by a lawful prosecutor and with lawful witnesses. If the accused was of so high rank that no prosecutor would appear, the bishop might require the sheriff to call a jury to inquire into the case. 5. Archbishops, -bishops, and other great persons were forbidden to leave the realm without the king's permission. 6. Appeals were to be from the archdeacon to the bishop, from the bishop to the archbishop, from the archbishop to the king, and no further; that, by the king's mandate, the case might be ended in the archbishop's court.* The last article the king afterwards explained away. It was one of the most essential, but he was unable to main- tain it ; and he was rash, or he was ill-advised, in raising a second question, on which the pope would naturally be sen- sitive, before he had disposed of the first. On the original subject of dispute, whether benefit of clergy was to mean impunity to crime, the pope had already practically decided, and he could have been brought without difficulty to give a satisfactory judgment upon it. Some limit also might have been assigned to the powers of excommunication which could be so easily abused, and which, if abused, might lose their terrors. But appeals to the pope were the most lucra- tive source of the pope's revenue. To restrict appeals was to touch at once his pride and his exchequer. The Constitutions were drafted, and when the council assembled were submitted to Becket for approval. He snw in the article on the appeals a prospect of recovering Alexander's support, and he again became obstinate. None of the bishops, however, would stand by him. There was a general entreaty that he would not reopen the quarrel, and he yielded so far as to give a general promise of conform- 1 The Constitutions were seventeen in all. The articles in the text ar» tti epitome of those which the Church found most objectionable. Thomas Beohet. 33 ity.^ It was a promise given dishonestly — given with a con- Bcions intention of not observing it. He had been tempted, he afterwards said, by an intimation that, if he would but seem to yield, the king would be satisfied. Becket was a lawyer. He could not really have been under any such illusion. In real truth he did not mean to be bound by the language of the Constitutions at all, but only by his own language, from which it would be easy to escape. The king by this time knew the man with whom he had to deal. The Constitutions were placed in writing before the bishops, who one and all were required to signify their adherence under their several hands and seals. Becket, we are innocently told by his biographer Grim, now saw that he was to be entrapped. There was no en- trapping if his promise had been honestly given. The use of the word is a frank confession that he had meant to deceive Henry by words, and that he was being caught in his own snare. "When driven to bay, the archbishop's fiery nature always broke into violence. " Never, never," he said; " I will never do it so long as breath is in my body." '^ In affected penitence for his guilty compliance, he retired to his S3e to afflict his flesh with public austerities. He sus- pended himself ah altaris officio (from the service of the altar) till the pope should absolve him from his sin. The Bishop of Evreux, who was present at Clarendon, advised him to write to the pope for authority to sign. He pre- tended to comply, but he commissioned a private friend of ^ Foliot, however, says that many of the bishops were willing to stand out, and that Becket himself advised a false submission (Foliot to Becket, Giles, vol. i. p. 381.) 3 Sanctus archiepiscopus tunc primum dolum quern fuerat suspicatus ad- vertens, interposita fide quam Deo debuit: "Non hoc fiet," respondit. " quam diu in hoc vasculo spirat hsec anima.^' Nam domestici regis secu- rum fecerant archiepiscopum quod nunquam scriberentur leges, nunquam illarum fieret recordatio, si regem verbo tantum in audienti^ procerura bonorasset. Ficta se eonjuratione seductura videns, ad animam usque Wstabatur." — Matenak for the HUtory of Thomas Becket, vol. ii. p. 182. 3 34 lAfe and Times of his own, John of Salisbury, who was on the continent, to prepare for his reception on the flight which he already meditated from England, and by all methods, fair and foul, to prevent the pope and cardinals from giving the king any further encouragement. The Bishop of Lisieux, on the other liaTid, whose previous intercession had decided the pope in the king's favor, went to Sens in person to persuade Alexander to cut the knot by sending legatine powers to the Archbishop of York, to override Becket's obstinacy and to consent in the name of the Church instead of him. John of Salisbury's account of his proceedings gives a curious picture of the cause of God, as Becket called it, on its earthly and grosser side. *■ The Count of Flanders (he wrote to the archbishop) is most anxious to help you. If extremity comes, send the count word, and he will provide ships.^ Everything which passed in Lon- don and at Winchester (Clarendon) is better known here than in England itself. \ have seen the Kins of France, wlio un- dertakes to write to the pope in your behalf. The feeling to- wards our king among the Fi-enoh people is of fear and hatred. The pope himself I have avoided so far. I have written to the two cardinals of Pisa and Pavia to explain the injury which will ensue to the Court of Rome if the Constitutions are up- held. I am not sanguine, however. " Many things make against us, few in our favor. Great men will come over here with money to spend, quam nunquam Roma contempsit (which Rome never despised). The pope himself has always been against us in this cause, and throws in our teeth that after all which Pope Adrian did for the see of Canterbury you are al- lowing his mothiT to starve in cold and hunger." ^ You write that if I cannot succeed otherwise I may promise two hundred marks. The otlier side will give down three or four hundred sooner than be defeated,' and I will answer for the Romans that i " Naves enim procurabit si hoc necessitas vestra exegerit, et ipse ante, nt oportet, p^temoneatur." — Joannis Sarisbiriensis Epistohej vol. i. p. 188. 2 " Cujus mater apud vos algore torquetur et inedia." " " Sed scribitis, si alia via non patuerit, promittamus duceatas marcas. At certe pars adversa antequam frustretur trecentas dabit aut quadringea Thomas Becket. 35 they -will prefer the larger sum in hand from the king to the smaller in promise from you. It is true we are contending for the liberties of the Church, but your motive, it will be said, is not the Church's welfare, but your own ambition. They will propose (I have already heard a whisper of it) that the pope shall cross to England in person to crown the young king and take your place at Canterbury for a while. If the Bishop of Lisieux sees the pope, he will do mischief. I know the nature of him.i Though the archbishop was convulsing the realm for the sacred right of appeals to Eome, it is plain from this letter that he was aware of the motives by which the papal deci- sions were governed, and that he was perfectly ready to address himself to them. Unfortunately his resources were limited, and John of Salisbury's misgivings were con- firmed. The extraordinary legatine powers were conceded not to the Archbishop of York — it was held inexpedient to set York above Canterbury — but to the king himself. To Becket the pope wrote with some irony on hearing that he had suspended himself. He trusted the archbishop was not creating needless scandal. The promise to the king had been given with good intentions, and could not therefore be a serious sin. If there was anything further on his con- science (did the pope suspect that the promise had been dis- honest?), he might confess it to any discreet priest. He (the pope) meanwhile absolved him, and advised, and even enjoined, him to return to his duties. The first campaign was thus over, and the king was so far victorious. The legatine powers having arrived, the Constitutions were immediately acted upon. The number of criminals among the clergy happened to be unusually large.^ They were degraded, sent to trial, and suffered in the usual way by death or mutilation. "Then," say Beck- 1 John of Salisbury to Becket (abridged). Letters, vol. i. p. 187. 2 *' Sed et ordinatorum inordinati mores inter regem et archiepiscopiim kuxere malitiam, qui solito abundantius per idem tempus apparebant. Dub- "cis irretiti criminibus." — Materials, etc., vol. ii. p. 385. 36 lAfe and Times of et's despairing biographers, " was seen the mournful spec- tacle of priests and deacons who had committed murder, manslaughter, theft, robbery, and other crimes, carried in carts before the king's commissioners, and punished as if they had been ordinary men." The archbishop clamored, tlii'eatened, and, as far as his power went, interfered. The king was firm. He had sworn at his coronation, he said, to do justice in the realm, and there were no greater villains in it than many of the clergy.* That bishops should take public offenders out of custody, absolve them, and let them go, was not to be borne. It was against law, against usage, against reason. It could not be. The laity were gener- ally of the king's opinion. Of the bishops some four or five agreed privately with Becket, but dared not avow their opinions. The archbishop perceived that the game was lost unless he could himself see the pope and speak to him. He attempted to steal over from Sandwich, but the boatmen recognized him midway across the channel and brought bin* back. 1 " In omni scelere et flagitio nequiores." Thomas Beeket. 87 CHAPTER IV. ThI; pope had sent legatine powers to the king, and the king had acted upon them ; but something waa still wanting for general satisfaction. He had been required to confirm the Constitutions by a bull. He had hesitated to do it, and put off his answer. At length he sent the Archbishop of Bouen to England to endeavor to compromise matters. The formal consent of the Church was still wanting, and in the absence of it persons who agreed with the king in prin- ciple were uneasy at the possible consequences. The clergy might be wicked, but they were magicians notwithstanding, and only the chief magician could make it safe to deal with them. In the autumn of 1164 the king once more sum- moned a great council to meet him at Northampton Castle. The attendance was vast. Every peer and prelate not dis- abled was present, all feeling the greatness of the occasion. Castle, town, and monasteries were thronged to overflowing. Beeket only had hesitated to appear. His attempt to es- cape to the continent was constructive treason. It was more than treason. It was a violation of a distinct promise which he had given to the king.' The storm which he had raised had unloosed the tongues of those who had to com- plain of his ill-usage of them either in his archbishop's court or in the days when he was chancellor. The accounts had been looked into, and vast sums were found to have been received by him of which no explanation had been given. Who was this man, that he should throw the coun- try into confusion, in the teeth of the bishops, in the teeth (as it seemed) of the pope, in the teeth of his own oath 1 Foliot to Beeket, Giles, vol. ii. p. 387. 88 Life and Times of given solemnly to the king at Woodstock ? The Bishop of London, in a letter to Becket, charged him with having directly intended to commit perjury.^ The first object of the Northampton council was to inquire into his conduct, and he had good reason to be alarmed at the probable con- sequences. He dared not, however, disobey a peremptory summons. He came, attended by a large force of armed knights, and was entertained at the monastery of St. An- drews. To anticipate inquiry into his attempted flight, he applied for permission on the day of his arrival to go to France to visit the pope. The king told him that he could not leave the realm until he had answered for a decree which had been given in his court. The case was referred to the assembled peers, and he was condemned and fined. It was a bad augury for him. Other charges lay thick, ready to be produced. He was informed officially that he would be requii-ed to explain the Chancery accounts, and answer for the money which he had applied to his own purposes. His proud temper was chafed to the quick, and he turned sick with anger.* His admirers see only in these demands the sinister action of a dishonest tyranny. Oblique accusations, it is said, were raised against him, either to make him bend or to destroy his character. The question is rather whether his conduct admitted of explanation. If he had been un- just as a judge, if he had been unscrupulous as a high offi- cer of state, such faults had no unimportant bearing on his present attitude. He would have done wisely to clear him- self if he could ; it is probable that he could not. He re- fused to answer, and he sheltered himself behind the release which he had received at his election. His refusal was not allowed ; a second summons the next day found him in his ' Foliot says that at Clarendon Becket said to the bishops, " It is the Lord's will I should perjure mvselt. For the present I submit and incur perjury, to repent of it, however, as I best may." — Giles, vol. i. p. 381. Foliot was reminding Hecket of what passed on that occasion. 2 "Propter iratn et indignationem quam in animo conceperat decidit il gravem aegritudinem." — Hoveden, vol. i. p. 225. Thomas Becket. 39 oed, which he said that he was too ill to leave. This was on a Saturday. A respite was allowed him until the fol- lowing Monday. On Monday the answer was the same. Messenger after messenger brought back word that the archbishop was unable to move. The excuse might be true — perhaps partially it was true. The king sent two great peers to ascertain, and in liis choice of persons he gave a conclusive answer to the accusation of desiring to deal un- fairly with Becket; one was ReginiUd, Earl of Cornwall, the king's uncle, wlio as long as Becket lived was the best friend that he had at the court ; the other was the remark- able Robert, Earl of Leicester, named Bossu (the Hunch- back). This Robert was a monk of Leicester Abbey, though he had a dispensation to remain at the court, and so bitter a papist was he that when the schismatic Archbishop of Cologne came afterwards to London he publicly insulted him and tore down the altar at which he had said mass. Such envoys would not have been selected with a sinister purpose. They found that the archbishop could attend if he wished, and they warned hira of the danger of trying the king too far. He pleaded for one more day. On the Tues- day morning he undertook to be present. His knights, whose first allegiance was to the Crown, had withdrawn from the monastery, not daring or not choosing to stand by a prelate who appeared to be defj'ing his sover- eign. Their place had been taken by a swarm of mendi- cants, such as the archbishop had gathered about him at Canterbury. He prepared for the scene in which he was to play a part with the art of which he was so accomplished a master. He professed to expect to be killed. He rose early. Some of the bishops came to see and i-eraonstrate with him : they could not move his resolution, and they re- tired. Left to himself, he said the mass of St. Stephen in which wei-e the words : " The kings of the earth stood up, and the rulers took counsel together against the Lord and against his anointed." He then put on a black stole and 40 Life and Times of cap, mounted Ins palfrey, and, followed by a few monks and Biirrounded by his guard of beggars, rode a foot's pace to the castle preceded by his cross-bearer. The royal castle of Northampton was a feudal palace ol the usual form. A massive gateway led into a quadrangle ; across the quadrangle was the entrance of the great hall, and at the upper end of the hall doors opened into spacious chambers beyond. The archbishop alighted at the gate, himself took his cross in his right hand, and, followed by a small train, passed through the quadrangle, and passed up the hall, " looking like the lion-man of the prophet's vision." ^ The king and the barons were in one chamber, the bishops in another. The archbishop was going in this attitude into the king's presence, that the court might see the person on whom they dared to sit in judgment ; but certain " Temp- lars " warned him to beware. He entered among his breth- ren, and moved through them to a chair at the upper end of the room. He still held his cross. The action was unusual ; the cross was the spiritual sword, and to bear it thus conspicu- ously in a deliberative assembly was as if a baron had entered the council in arms. The mass of St. Stephen had been heard of, and in the peculiar temper of men's minds was regarded as a magical incantation." The Bishop of Hereford advanced and oflfered to carry the crot . for him. Foliot, Bishop of London {filius hujus sceculi, " a son of this world") said that if he came thus armed into the court the king would draw a sharper sword, and he would see then what his arms would avail him. Seeing him still ob- stinate, Foliot tried to force the cross out of his hands. The Archbishop of York added his persuasions ; but the Archbishop of York peculiarly irritated Becket, and was 1 "Assumens faciem hominis, faciem leonis, )er artem mayicam &t in cotUempH ngit. (Hovcden.) He bad the eiicharist concealed under his dresa. Thomas Becket. 41 silenced by a violent answer. " Fool thou hast ever been," said the Bishop of London, " and from thy folly I see plainly thou wilt not depart." Cries burst out on all sides. " Fly ! " some one whispered in the archbishop's ear ; " fly or you are a dead man." The Bishop of Exeter came in at the moment, and exclaimed that unless the archbishop gave way they would all be murdered. Becket never showed to more advantage than in moments of personal danger. To the Bishop of Exeter he gave a sharp answer, telling him that he savored not the things of God. But he collected himself. He saw that he was alone. He stood up, he appealed to the pope, charged the bishops on peril of their souls to excommunicate any one who dared to lay hands on him, and moved as if he intended to withdraw. T1.3 Bishop of Winchester bade him resign the archbishop- ric. With an elaborate oath (cum intermindbili juratione) he swore that he would not resign. The Bishop of Chi- chester then said : " As our primate we are bound to obey you, but you are our primate no longer; you have broken your oath. You swore allegiance to the king, and you subvert the common law of the realm. We too appeal to the pope. To his presence we summon you." "1 hear what you say," was all the answer which Becket deigned to return. The doors from the adjoining chamber were now flung open. The old Earl of Cornwall, the hunchback Leicester, and a number of barons entered. " My lord," said the Earl of Leicester to the archbishop, ''the king requires you to come to his presence and answer to certain things which will then be alleged against you, as you promised yesterday to do." " My lord earl," said Becket, " thou knowest how Jong and loyally J served the king in his worldly affairs. For that cause it pleased him to promote me to the office which now I hold. I did not desire the office ; I knew my infirmities. Wlien I consented it was for the sake of the king alone. When I was elected I was formally acquitted 42 Life and Times of of my responsibilities for all that I had done as chancellor. Therefore I am not bound to answer, and I will not an swer." The earls carried back the reply. The peers by a swift vote declared that the archbishop must be arrested and placed under guard. The earls reentered, and Leicester approached him and began slowly and reluctantly to announce the sentence. " Nay," said Becket, lifting his tall meagre figure to its haugh- tiest height, " do thou first listen to me. The child may not judge his father. The king may not judge me, nor may you judge me. I will be judged under God by the pope alone, to whom in your presence I appeal. I forbid you under anathema to pronounce your sentence. And you, my breth- ren," he said, turfiing to the bishops, "since you will obey man rather than God, I call you too before the same judg- ment-seat. Under the protection of the Apostolic See, I depart hence." No hand was raised to stop him. He swept through the chamber and flung open the door of the hall. He stumbled on the threshold, and had almost fallen, but recovered him- self. The October evening was growing into twilight. The hall was thronged with the retinues of the king and the barons. Dinner was over. The floor was littered with rushes and fragments of rolls and broken meat. Draughts of ale had not been wanting, and young knights, pages, and retainers were either lounging on the benches or talking in eager and excited groups. As Becket appeared among them, fierce voices were heard crying, " Traitor ! traitor ! Stop the traitor ! " Among the loudest wei-e Count Hame- lin, the king's illegimate brother, and Sir Ranulf de Broc, one of the Canterbury knights. Like a bold animal at bay, Becket turned sharply on these two. He called Count Ha- raelin a bastard boy. He reminded De Broc of some near kinsman of his who had been hanged. The cries rose into a roar ; sticks and knots of straw were flung at him. An- Thomas Bechet. 43 (jther rash word, and he fiaight have been torn in pieces. Some high official hearing the noise came in and conducted him safely to the door. In the quadrangle he found his servants waiting with his palffey. The grfeat gate was locked, but the key was hang- ing on the wall ; one of them took it and opened the gate, the porters looking on, but not interfering. Once outside he was received with a cheer of delight from the crowd, and with a mob of people about him he made his way back to the monastery. Tlie king had not intended to arrest him, but he could not know it, and he was undoubtedly in dange* from one or other of the angry men with whom the town was crowded. He prepared for immediate flight. A bed was mad« for him in the chapel behind the altar. After a hasty supper with a party of beggars whom he had intro- duced into the house, he lay down for a few hours of rest. At two in the morning, in a storm of wind and rain, he stole away disguised with two of the brethren. He reached Lin- coln soon after daybreak, and from Lincoln, going by cross paths, and slipping from hiding-place to hiding-place, he made his way in a fortnight to a farm of his own at Eastry, near Sandwich. He was not pursued. It was no sooner known that lie was gone from Northampton than a procla- mation was sent through the country forbidding every man under pain of death to meddle with him. The king had determined to allow the appeal, and once more to place the whole question in the pope's hands. The Earl of Arundel with a dozen peers and bishops was dispatched at once to Sens to explain what had happened, and to request Alex- ander to send legates to England to investigate the quarrel and to end it. The archbishop, could he have consented to be quiet, might have remained unmolested at Canterbury till the result could be ascertained. But he knew too well the forces which would be at work in the papal court to wait for its verdict. His confidence was only in himself, ^ould he see the pope in person, he thought that he could 44 Life and Times of \ influence him. He was sure of the friendship of Lewis of France, who was meditating a fresh quarrel with Henry, and would welcome his support. His own spiritual weapons would be as effective across the Channel as if used in Eng- land, while he would himself be in personal security. One dark night he went down with his two companions into Sandwich, and in an open boat crossed safely to Grave- lines. At St. Omer he fell in with his old friend Chief Justice de Luci, who was returning from a mission to the court of France. De Luci urged him to return to England and wait for the pope's decision, warning him of the con- sequences of persisting in a course which was really treason., able, and undertaking that the king would forgive him if he would go back at once. Entreaties and warnings were alike thrown away. He remained and dispatched a letter to the pope saying briefly that he had followed the example of his holiness in resisting the encroachments of princes, and had fled from his country. He had been called to answer before the king as if he had been a mere layman. The bishops, who ought to have stood by him, had behaved like cow- ards. If he was not sustained by his holiness, the Church would be ruined, and he would himself be doubly con foonded. Thomas Bechet. 4fi CHAPTER V. The king and the English bishops looked with reason- able confidence to the result of their appeal. Beeket had broken his promise to accept the Constitutions, and had so broken it as to show that the promise had been given in conscious bad faith. He was a defaulting public officer. He had been unjust as a judge. He had defied the Crown and the estates of the realm. He had refused to answer for his conduct, and had denied his responsibilities. He had deserted his post, and had fled from the realm, although the king's proclamation had left him without the excuse that he was in fear of personal violence. He was an archbishop, and possessed, in virtue of his office, of mysterious powers which the laity had not learned to defy. But the pope was superior to him in his own sphere, and on the pope the king naturally felt that he had a right to rely. The Earl of Arundel with the other peers, the Archbishop of York, and the Bishops of London, Chichester, and Exeter, were chosen as envoys, and were dispatched immediately on the dissolution of the Northampton meeting. They crossed the Channel on the same night that Beeket crossed, and after a hasty and unsatisfactory interview with Lewis at Compiegne they made their way to Sens. Beeket ought to have met them there. But Beeket preferred to feel his ground and make friends in France before presenting him- self. He was disappointed in the Count of Flanders, who declined to countenance him. He escaped in disguise over the French frontier, and addressed himself to Lewis at Sois- Bons. Lewis, who meant no good to Henry, received him warmly, and wrote in his favor to the pope. At the French 46 Life imd Times oj court he remained till lie saw how matters would go at Sens, sending forward his confidential friend, Herbert of Bosham, to watch the proceedings, and speak for him to the pope and cardinals. He might have easily been present himself, since Herbert reached Sens only a day after the arrival of the English ambassiidors. Tlie bishops stated their case. They laid the blame of the quarrel on the archbishop's violence. They explained the moderation of the king's demands. They requested the pope's interposition. The Earl of Arundel followed in the name of the English barons. He dwelt on the fidelity with which the king had adhered to the Holy See in its troubles, and the regret with which, if justice was denied them, the English nation might be compelled to look elsewhere. He requested, and the bishops requested, that Becket should be ordered to return to Canterbury, and that a legate or legates should be sent with plenary powers to hear the cause and decide upon it. Seeing that the question immediately before the pope did not turn on the Constitutions, but on the liability of the archbishop to answer for his civil administration, the king was making a large concession. Many cardinals had their own good reasons for being on the the king's side, and, if left to himself, the pope would have been glad to oblige a valu- able friend. But to favor Henry was to offend Lewis under whose shelter he had taken refuge. The French bishops were many of them as violent as Becket himself. The French people were on the same side from natural enmity to England, and Pope Alexander was in the same difficulty in which Pope Clement found himself three centuries later between Henry the Eighth and Cliarles the Fifth. He said that lie could form no resolution till he had heard what Becket had to say. He suggested that the English envoys should wait for Becket's arrival ; but it was uncertain when Becket might arrive ; his French friends were gather- ing in their rear, and might intercept their return. A pro- TlvomaB Becket. 47 jracted stay was impossible, and they again pressed for a .egate. Alexander agreed to send some one, but without the ample powers which the envoys desired. He reserved the final decision for himself. The influences by which the papal court was determined were already too grossly notorious. A decision given in France would be the decision which would please the King of 'France. The envoys went home, taking with them a complimentary nuncio from the pope, and they had some dif- ficulty in escaping an attempt to waylay and capture them. They had no sooner gone than Becket appeared at Sens. He was received with no great warmth by the pope, and still more coldly by the cardinals " whose nostrils the scent of lucre had infected."' French pressure, however, soon produced its effect. He had come magnificently attended from Soissons. His cause was openly espoused by the French nation. At his second interview, on his knees at Alexander's feet he represented that he was the victim of his devotion to the Holy See and the Catholic faith. He had only to yield on the Constitutions to be restored at once, to favor and power. The Constitutions were read over, and he asked how it was possible for him to acknowl- edge laws which reduced the clergy into common mortals, and restricted appeals to the last depositary of justice on earth. Herbert of Bosham states that the pope and cardinals had never yet seen the Constitutions, but had only heard of them. This is simply incredible, and, like many othtr Itories of this interesting but interested writer, is confuted by the facts of the case. John of Salisbury had said that the proceedings at Clarendon were better known on the con- tinent than in England. They had been watched in France for almost a year with the closest attention. Bishops and abbots had gone to and fro between the pope and the Eng- ish court with no other object than to find some terms oi 1 "Quorum nares odor lucri infecerat." 48 Life and Times of compromise. It is not conceivable that after sending an order to Becket to submit, after Becket had first consented, had then suspended himself for the sin of acquieseiice, and had been absolved by Alexander himself, the Holy Father should never liave acquainted himself with the particulars of the controversy. It is no less incredible, therefore, that, after hearing the Constitutions read, the pope should have severely blamed Becket, as Herbert also says that he did, for having ever consented at all. Be this as it may, the Constitutions found no favor. Parts of them were found tolerable, but parts intolerable, especially the restriction of the appeals. Again the pope took time for reflection. English money had secured a powerful faction among his advisers, and they were not ungrateful. Henry, they said, would no doubt modify the objectionable articles ; and it was unsafe to alienate him at so dangerous a time. In pri- vate they sharply blamed Becket for having raised so inop- portune a storm ; and but for his own adroitness the arch- bishop would have been defeated after all. Once more he sought the pope's presence. He confessed his sins, and he tempted Alexander with the hope of rescuing the nomina- tion to the see of Canterbury from secular interference. He had been intruded into Christ's sheepfold, he said, by the secular power ; ^ and from this source all his subsequent troubles hud arisen. The bishops at Northampton had bade him resign. He could not resign at their bidding, but he threw himself and his office on his holiness's mercy. He had accepted the archbishopi'ic uncanonically. He now re- linquished it, to be restored or not restored as the pope anight please. It was a bold stroke, and it nearly failed. Many cardi- 1 ■' Ascend! in ovile Cliristi, sed non per ip!iiim ostium: velut qnem non canonica vocavtt electio, sed terror publicm potestatisintrusit." — MateriaU fw the History of Thomas a /lecket, vol. ii. p. 243. But all these accounts »f conversations must be received with caution. The accounts vary Irrec- tncilably; and the en(hu.«ia.ini of the biof!;raphers for their master and big cause infects every line of their narrative. Thomas BecTcet. 49 nals saw in the offer a road out of the difficulty.. Terms could now be arranged with Henry, and Becket could be provided for elsewhere. For some hours or days his friends thought his cause was lost. But the balance wavered at last so far in his favor that the sacrifice was not permitted. He was not, as he had expected, to be sent back in triumph to England supported by threats of interdict and excommu- nication to triumph over his enijmies. But he was reinstated as archbishop. He was assigned a residence at the Cister- cian monastery of Pontigny, thirty miles from Sens; and there he was directed to remain quiet and avoid for the present irritating the king further.' The king was sufficiently irritated i}.lready. The support which Lewis had given to Becket meant too probably that war with France was not far off. Becket himself was virt- ually in rebellion, and his character made it easy to foresee the measures which he would adopt if not prevented. The posts were watched, strangers were searched for letters. English subjects were forbidden to introduce brief, bull, or censure either from the pope or from the archbishop. The archbishop's estates were sequestrated. "Were he allowed to retain his large income and spend it abroad, he would use it to buy friends among the cardinals. The see was put under administrators — the rents, so Henry afterwards Bwore, were chiefly laid out in management, and the sarp'us was distributed in charity. The incumbents of the arch- bishop's benefices being his special creatures were expelled, and loyal priests were put in their places. Another harder measure was adopted. All his relations, all his connections Bnd dependents, except a few who gave securities for good conduct, were banished from England, four hundred of them, men, women, and children. Either it was feared the 1 The answer supposed to have been g^lven by the pope, permitting him to use the censures, belongs to the follow'ng year. It refers to the seques- tration of the Canterbury estates, and this did not take place till after Becket aad been settled at Pontigny. 4 50 Life and Times of archbishop would employ them to disturb -the country, or it was mere vengeance, or it was to make Becket an expen. sive guest to Lewis. All this Becket was obliged to bear with. Armed as he was with lightnings, he was forbidden to make use of them. Nay, worse, the pope himself could not even yet be de- pended on. Angry as he was, the king wrote to propose that Alexander should visit b>m in England, or, if this were impossible, that the pope, Lewis, and Henry should meet in Normandy and take measures together for the common welfare of Christendom. Henry had no wish to join Bar- barossa if he could help it; and neither the pope nor Lewis could wish to force him. If such a meeting came off, it was easy to foresee the issue. John of Salisbury, who was Becket's agent at the French court, when he heard what was intended, wrote that it must be prevented at all haz- ards. In terms not very complimentary to the holy father's understanding, the archbishop implored Alexander to con- sent to no meeting with the King of England, except one at which he should himself be present. " The king," he said, " is so subtle with his words that he would confound the apostolic religion itself. He will find the weak paints of the pope's character, and will trip him up to his destruc- tion." ' The King of France (John of Salisbury wrote to Becket) ad- mits that he fears to urge the pope to use the censures in your behalf. If this be so now, how will it be when our king is here hi person, arguing, promising, and threatening with the skill which you know that he possesses? He has secured the Count of Flanders ^ the countess, like a prudent matron, is thinking of marriages foi lier children — and has sent him three hundred ella of linen to make shirts. The Archbishop of Rheims is the count's diiar friend I advise you, therefore, to trust in God and give yourself to prajcr. Put away thoughts of this world; pray 1 " Sect et citiiiB potei'it apnstolica circumveniri religio ex varietate ver- boruni regis . . . et si rex infirmiora domini papae praenoverit exitus via. rum suarum olislriict uffeiidieulis." — MaterinU, vol. ii. p. 346. Thomas BecTcet. 51 ind meditate. The Psalms will be better reading for you than philosophy; and to confer with spiritual men, whose example may intiuonce your devotion, will profit you more than indulg- ing in litigious speculations. I say this from my heart: take it as you please. These words show Becket to us as through an inverted telescope, the magnifying mist blown away, in his true out- lines and true proportions. The true Becket, as the pope knew him, was not the person peculiarly fitted to be the Church's champion in a cause which was really sacred. John of Salisbury thought evidently at this time that there was no longer any hope that the archbishop would really succeed. He wished, he said in a letter to the Bishop of Exeter, to make his peace with the king. He could not desert the archbishop, but he was loyal to his sovereign. Ue called God to witness how often he had rebuked the archbishop for his foolish violence.' H-e could not promise that he would quit his old master's service, but in all else he would be guided by the Bishop of Exeter's advice. 1 " Novit enim cordium inspector quod ssepius et asperius quam aliquis mortalium corripuerim dominum archiepiscopum de his in qnibus ab initio dominum regem et suos zelo quodam inconsultius visus est ad amaritudi* nam provocasse," etc. — Letters, vol. i. p. 203, ed. Giles. 52 lAfe and Times of CHAPTER Vr. Mkanwhile the quarrel between Becket and the King of Eugland became the topic of the hour throughout Europe. Which was right and which was wrong, what the pope would do or ought to do, and whether England would join Germany in the schism — these questions were the theme of perpetual discussions in council and conclave, were debated in universities, and were fought over at con- vent and castle dinner-tables. Opinions were so divided that, in a cause which concerned Heaven so nearly, people were looking for Heaven to give some sign. As facts were wanting, legend took the place of them, and stories began to spread, either at the time or immediately after, of direct and picturesque manifestations of grace which had been vouchsafed in Becket's favor. It was said that when dining with Pope Alexander he had twice unconsciously turned water into wine. At Pontigny he had been graciously visited by our Lady herself. He had left England ill pro- vided with clothes. His wardrobe was in disorder; his drawers especially, besides being dirty, were in holes. He was specially delicate in such matters, and was too modest to confess his difficulties. He stayed at home one day alone to do the repairs himself. He was pricking his fingers and succeeding indifferently, when our Lady — who, as the biog- raphers tell us, had been taught to sew when she was at Nazareth — came in, sat down, took the drawers out of the archbishop's hand, mended them excellently, and went as she had come. The arclibishop had not recognized his visitor. Soon after a singular case of church discipline was referred to his decision. A young Frenchman, specially Thomas Becket. 63 devoted to the Virgin Mary, had built a chapel in her honor not far from Pontigny, had placed her image over the altar, and had obtained ordination himself that he might make his daily offerings tliere. But he neither would nor could re- peat any mass but the mass of the Virgin. The authorities reprimanded him but to no purpose. Our Lady filled his soul, and left no room for any other object. The irregular- ity was flagrant — the devotion was commendable. Becket was consulted as to what should be done, and Becket sent for the offender and gently put before him that he was making a scandal which must positively cease. The youth rushed away in despair, and flung himself before our Lady's image, declaring that his love was for her and for her alone. She must save him from interference, or he would pull the chapel down and do other wild and desperate things. The eyes of the image began to smile, the neck bent, the lips openeil. " Have no fear, carissime," it said : " go to the archbishop. Entreat again to be allowed to continue your devotions to me. If he refuses, ask him if he remembers who mended his drawers." We may guess how the story ended. With tales of this kind floating in the air, the first year of Becket's exile wore out, the pope giving uncertain answers to the passionate appeals which continued to be made to him, according to the fortune of the Emperor Frederick in Italy. Frederick being at last driven out of Lombardy, the pope recovered heart, and held out brighter prospects. He sent Becket permission to excommunicate the persons in occu- jiation of his estates and benefices, and he promised to ratify his sentence if opportunely issued. He did not permit, but also did not specially forbid, him to excommunicate the king, while Lewis, with Becket's knowledge, and in the opinion of the cardinals who came afterwards to inquire into his conduct, at Becket's direct instigation, prepared to invade Normandy. Henry, well informed of what was coming, began now to turn to Germany in earnest. By 54 lAfe and Times of the advice of his barons, as he said, he wrote to Reginald, Frederick's archbishop chancellor, to tell him that he was about to send an embassy to the pope to demand that he should be relieved of Becket, and that the Constitutions should be ratified. If justice was refused him, he and his people were prepared to renounce their allegiance to Alex- ander and to unite with Germany.' The chancellor was himself invited to England to arrange a marriage be- tween the Princess Matilda and the Duke of Saxony. A decided step of this kind it was thought might bring the pope to his senses. Separation from Rome, indeed, was the true alternative : and had the country been prepared to follow Henry, and had Henry himself been prepared at the bottom of his mind to defy the pope and the worst that he could do, the great schism between the Teutonic and Latin races might have been antedated, and the course of history been changed. But Henry was threatening with but half a heart, and the country was less prepared than he. In Germany itself, the pope in the end proved too strong for the emperor. In England, even WickliflFe was premature. With all its enor- Tious faults, the Roman Catholic organization in both coun- tries was producing better fruits on the whole than any other which could have been substituted for it ; and almost three centuries had yet to pass, bringing with them accumu- lating masses of insincerities and injustices, before Europe could become ripe for a change. A succession of Beckets would have precipitated a rupture, whatever might be the cogt or consequences ; 'but the succeeding prelates were men of the world as well as statesmen, and were too wise to press theories to their logical consequences. The Archbishop of Cologne came to London with the taint of his schism upon him. The court entertained him. The German marriage was arranged. But Henry received a startling intimation that he must not try the barons toe 1 Giles, vol. i. p. 316. Thomas Becket. 55 tax. They had supported him in what they lield to be reasonable demands to wliich the pope might be expected to consent. They were not ready to support him in a re- volt from Rome, even though disguised behind the name of an autipope. The hunchbacked Piarl of Leicester refused Barbarossa's chancellor the kiss of peace in open court at Westminster, and on his departure the altars at which the ■schismatic ppela;te had said mass were destroyed.* Alexander meanwhile had written to Foliot, directing liim and the Bishop of Hereford to remonstrate with the king, to entreat him to act in conformity with his past repu- tation and to put an end to the scandal which he had caused, hinting that if Henry persisted in refusing he might be un- able to restrain the archbishop from excommuuicating him. The two bishops discharged their commission. "The king," Foliot replied to the pope, " took what we said in excellent part. He assured us that his affection towards your holiness ■remained as it had been, but he said that he had stood by you in your misfortunes, and that he had met with a bad return. He had hindered no one from going to you on your invitation, and he meant to hinder no one. As to appeals, he merely claimed that each case should be first thoroughly heard in his own courts. If justice could not be had there, appeals to Rome might remain without ob- jection from himself. "If the emperor was excommunicated, he promised to break off correspondence with him. As to the Archbishop of Canterbury, he had- not been expelled •from England ; be had left it of his own accord, and might return when he pleased. To the Church, now as always, he wished to submit his differences with the archbishop." If this was not all which the pope might expect, Foliot advised him to be contented with it. " The king," he con- tinued, "'having consented to defer to the Church, considers that right is on his side. Let your holiness therefore be- ware of measures which may drive him and his subjects into 1 Matthew Paris, Chronica Majora^ 1165. 56 lAfe and IXmes of revolt. A wounded limb may be healed ; a limb cut off is lost forever. Some of us may bear persecution on your account, but there will not be wanting those who will bow their knee to Baal. Men can be found to fill the English sees who will obey the antipope. Many, indeed, already wish for the change." ' The pope, who did not understand the English character was as much disturbed as Henry could have desired to see him. He found that he had encouraged Becket too far. He wrote to press upon him that the days were evil ; that he must endeavor to conciliate the king ; that he must on no account excommunicate him, or lay England under in- terdict, or venture any violent courses, at any rate before the ensuing Easter.'' He wrote affectionately to Henry himself. He thanked the two bishops with the utmost warmth, and expressed himself delighted with the accounts which he i-eceived of the king's frame of mind.' The Arch- bishop of Rouen and tlie Empress Matilda had written to him to the same purpose, and had given him equal pleasure. If Foliot could bring about a reconciliation, he would love him forever. Meanwhile he would follow Foliot's advice and keep Becket quiet. A very slight concession from Becket would now have made an arrangement possible, for Henry was tired of the quarrel. He invited the Norman prelates to meet him at a conference at Chinon. The archbishop was expected to attend, and peace was then to have been arranged. In this spii'it the Bishop of Hereford addressed the archbishop him- self, entreating him to agree to moderate conditions. Far away was Becket fiom concessions. He knew better than the pope the state of English feeling. He was in corre- Bpoudence (it is likely enough) with the Earl of Leicester At all events he must have heard of Leicester's treatmenif 1 Foliot to the Pope, 1165. Hoveden (ed. Giles), vol. i. p. 231. 2 Giles, vSl. i. p. 324. • *' Gaudemus et exultamus super ea devotione ejusdem regis." Thomas Becket. 57 of Reginald of Cologne. He knew that in fearing that England would go into schism the pope was frightened by a shadow. He had not defied king, peers, and bishops at Northampton that the fight should end in a miserable com- promise. Sharply he rebuked the Bishop of Hereford for his timid counsels. " For you," he said, " I am made anath- ema, and when you should stand by me you advise me to yield. You should rather have bidden rae draw the sword of Peter and avenge the blood of the saints. I mourn over you as over my firstborn. Up, my son. Cry aloud and cease not. Lift up your voice, lest God's anger fall on you and all the nation perish. I grieve for the king. Tribula- tion impends over him. They have devoured Jacob and laid waste his dwelling-place." ' To John of Salisbury Becket announced that his patience was exhausted, that when Easter was passed he would be free, and that in his own opinion he ought to forbear no longer. He desired to know how far his friend agreed with him. John of Salisbury was more prudent than his master. " Precipitate action," he said, " may expose you to ridicule and ruin. You ask my advice. I recommend you not to rely on the Holy See. Write to the empress mother, write to the Archbishop of Rouen and the other prelates. Tell them you are ready to obey the law and go back if you are treated with justice. The adversary will not agree to conditions really fair, but you will have set yourself right with the world. Should the king be more moderate than I think he will be, do not stand upon securities. Content yourself with a promise under the king's hand and the as- surance of the empress mother. Do not try the censures. You know my opinion about this, and you once agreed with me. The king is not afraid of excommunication. The bish- ops and most of the clergy have stood by him ; some may be with us in heart, but they are not to be depended on." ^ 1 Becket to the Bislinp of Hereford, Hoveden. I am obliged greatly tc compress the difEu.«e rhetoric of tlie aiTiibishop. * John of Salisbury to Becket, April, 1166 (abridged). 58 Jjife and Times of Becket, like most persons of his temperament, asked a«l- ■vice without meaning to follow it. He addressed the king in a letter which Herbert describes as being of extreme sweetness. It was to entreat him to let loose the bride of Christ whom he held in captivity, and to warn him that if he persevered in his wicked ways, " Christ wonld gird his swoi-d upon his thigh,'' and would descend from heaven to punish him. Inflated language of this kind was not general at that time. It was peculiar to Becket, and we need not be surprised that it produced no effect on Henry. He went to Normandy to the Chinon conference immediately after Easter, 1 1 66, hoping there to meet Becket and speak with him and with the other prelates as with reasonable men. He did not find Becket there, but he found a second letter from him, which from a saint would have tried the temper of a more patient sovereign than Henry, and from a man wliom he had known so lately as a defaulting chancellor and unscrupulous politician was insolent and absurd. After reproaching the king for allowing him to live on the charity of Lewis of France, the archbishop proceeded : — You are my king, my lord, and mj- spiritual son. As you are my king, I owe you reverence and admonition; as you are my lord, I owe you such obedience as consists with the honor of God; as you are my son, I owe you the chastisement which is due from the father to the child. You hold your authority from the Church, which consists of clergy and laymen. The clergy have sole charge of things spiritual : kings, earls, and counts have powers delegated to them from the Church, to preserve peace and the Church's unity. Delegated from the Church, 1 say. Therefore it rests not with you to tell bishops whom they jiiay excommunicate, or to force clergy to tlteir answers in secu- liir courts, or to interfere with tithes, or do any of those things to wliich you pretend in the name of custom. Remember your coronation oath. Restore my property. Allow me to return to Canterbury, and I will obey you as far as the honor of God and the Holy Sen and our sacred order permits me. Refuse, and be Thomas Becket. 59 %B8ured you will not fail to experience the severe displeasure of Almighty God.' This letter appears to have been placed in Henry's hands imjnediately before he met the Norman bishops. On en- tering the conference he was ill with agitation. Persons present said that he was in tears. He told the bishops that Becket was aiming at his destruction, soul and body. He said they were no better than traitors for not protecting him more effectually from the violence of a single man.' The Archbishop of Rouen protested against the word " trai- tors." But it was no time for niceties of expression. War with France was on the point of breaking out, and Becket, it was now plain, meant to give it the character of a sacred war by excommunicating Henry. Easter was past: he was free to act, and clearly enough he meant to act. The Bishop of Lisieux advised an instant appeal to the pope, which would keep Becket's hands tied for the moment. He and another bishop rushed off to Pontigny to serve the notice on him. They arrived too late. Before launching his thunderbolts Becket had gone to Soissons, there to pre- pare for the operation. At Soissons were to be found in special presence the Blessed Virgin and St. Gregory, whose assistance the arch- bishop considered would be peculiarly valuable to him ; and not they only, but another saint, Beatus Drausius, the patron of pugQists and duellists, who promised victory to intending combatants on their passing a night at his slirine.' 1 Becket to the King, May, 1166 (abridged). 2 " Tandem dixit quod omnes proditores erant, qui euin adhibita operS et diligentia ab uniuR hominis infestatione nolebant impedire.^' 8 ** Archiepiscopus noster in procinctu ferendie seiitentiie constitutus iter wripuerat ad urbem Suessionum oiationis causa, ut Beatse Virgini, cujus ibi memoria Celebris est, et Beato Drausio, ad quern confugiunt pugnaturi, et Bcato Gregorio Anglicanie Ecclesi^e fundatori, qui in eadem urbe requiescit, agonem suum precibus commendaret. Est autem Beatus Drausiusgloriosis. Bimus confessor qui, sicut Franci et Lotharingi credunt, pugiles qui ad me- moriam ejus pernoctant reddit invictos." — .lulin of Salisbury to the Bishop Df Exeter. Letters, vol. i. p. 227, ed. Giles. 60 Life and Times of Becket gave St. Drausius three nights — or perhaps one to each saint — and thus fortified he betook himself to Vezelay, where at Whitsuntide vast numbers of people assembled from all parts of France. There from the pulpit after sermon on Whitsuntide, with the appropriate cere- monies of bells and lighted candles quenched, he took ven- geance at last upon his enemies. He suspended the Bishop of Salisbury. He cursed John of Oxford and the Arch- deacon of Ilchester, two leading churchmen of the king's party. He cursed Chief Justice de Luci, who had directed the sequestration of his see. He cursed Ranulf de Broc and every person employed in administering bis estates. Finally he cursed every one who maintained the Constitu- tions of Clarendon, and he released the bishops from their promise to observe them. A remnant of prudence or a re- port of the king's illness led him partially to withhold hig hand. He did not actually curse Henry, but he threatened that he shortly would curse him unless he repented. In high delight with himself the archbishop issued a pastoral to tlie bishops of England telling them what he had done, talking in his usual high style of the rights of priests over kings and princes, and ordering them at their souls' peril to see that the sentence was obeyed. He wrote at the same time to the pope inclosing the terms of the excommunication, his condemnation of the Constitutions, and the threats which he had addressed to the king. These threats he declared his intention of carrying into effect un- less the king showed speedy signs of submission, and he required Alexander in a tone of imperious consequence to confirm what he had done. On the arrival of the censures in England the bishops met in London and determined on a further appeal to the pope. They addressed a unanimous and remarkable re- monstrance to him, going into the origin of the quarrel, in sisting on the abominable conduct of many of the clergy, the necessity ol reform, and the moderation which the king Thomas Bechet. 61 had shown.^ The Constitutions which he had adopted they declared to have been taken from tlie established customs of the realm. If they appeared objectionable, his holiness need but point to the articles of which he disapproved, and they should be immediately altered. The archbishop's un- called-for violence had been the sole obstacle to an arrange- ment. With this letter and others from the king an embassy was dispatched to Rome, John of Oxford, whom Becket had personally excommunicated, being significantly one of its members. Pending the result of the appeal, the English bishops in a body remonstrated with Becket himself. They reminded him of his personal obligations to the king, and of the dangers which he was provoking. The king, they said, had listened coldly hitherto to the advances of Germany. But these good dispositions might not last forever. For the archbishop to scatter curses without allowing the per- sons denounced an opportunity of answering for themselves, was against reason and precedent; and they had placed themselves under the protection of his holiness. Becket was not to be frightened by threats of German al- liance. He knew better. He lectured the bishops for their want of understanding. He rebuked them for their coward- ice and want of faith. The Bishop of London had recalled to him unpleasant passages in his own past history. The tone of Foliot as well as his person drove Becket wild. He spoke of the Bishop of London as an Ahitophel and a Doeg. Your letter (he replied to him) is like a scorpion with a sting in its tail. You profess obedience to me, and to avoid obe- dience you appeal to the pope. Little will you gain by it. You have no feeling for me, or for the Church, or for tlie king, whose ' " Qui cum pacem regni sui enormi insolcntium quorundam clericoruin excessu non mediocriter turban cognosceret, clero debitam exhibens rever- entiam eoruiidem excessus ad ecclesia; judices retulit episcopos, ut gladiui gladio subveniat." — Ad Alexandrum Pontijtcem. Horeden, vol. i. p. 266. 62 Life and Timei of soul is perishing. You blame me foi" threatening him. What father will see his son go astray and hesitate to restrain that son ? Who will not use the rod that he may spare the sword ? The ship is in the storm : I am at the hehn, and you bid me sleep. To liim who speaks thus to me I reply, " Get thee be- hind me, Satan!" The King, you say, desires to do what is right. My clergy are banished, my possessions are taken from me, the sword hangs over my neck. Do you call this right? Tell the king that the Lord of men and angels has established two ])0wers, princes and priests — the first earthly, the second spiritual; the first to obey, the second to command. He who breaks this order breaks the ordinance of God. Tell him it is no dishonor to him to submit to those to whom God himself defers, calling them gods in the sacred writings. For thus he speaks: " I have said ye are gods; " and again, " I will make thee a God unto Pharaoh;" " Thou shalt take nothing from the gods " (i". e. the priests).! .... The king may not judge his judges ; the lips of the priest shall keep wisdom. Tt is written, " Thou shalt require the law at his mouth, for he is the angel of God." The Catholic Church would have had but a brief careei in this world if the rulers of it had been so wild of mind as this astonishing martyr of Canterbury. The air-bubble, when blown the fullest and shining the brightest, is nearest to collapsing into a drop of dirty water. John of Salisbury, sympathizing with him and admiring him as he generally did, saw clearly that the pope could never sanction so pre- posterous an attitude. " I have little trust in the Church of Rome," he said. " I kuow the ways of it and the needa of it too well. So greedy, so dishonest are the Romans, that they use too often the license of power, and take dis- pensations to grant what they say is useful to the common- wealth, however fatal it may be to religion." ^ 1 " Non indignctur itaque dominas noster defeiTe illis quibus omnium Summiis deferre non dedignatur, deos appellans eos ssepius in sacris Ute- ris. Sic enira dicit, 'Ego dixi, Dii estis,' etc.; et ilerum, 'Constitiii to ieum Pharaonis,' ' Et diis non detralies,' i. c. sacerdotibus," etc. — Becket to Foliot. Hoveden, vol. i. p. 261. » " Nee de ecclesia Romans, cujus mores et necessitates nobis innota Thon.as Becket. 63 The first practical effect of the excommunication was the recoil of the blow upon the archbishop's entertainers. In the shelter of a Cistercian abbey in France, an English subject was committing treason and levying war against his sovereign and his country. A chapter of the Cistercian Order was held in September. King Henry sent a message to the general, that, if his abbot continued to protect Becket, the Cistercians in England would be suppressed, and their property confiscated. The startled general did not dare to resist ; a message was sent to Pontigny ; in the fluttered dovecote it was resolved that Becket must go, and it was a cruel moment to him. A fresh asylum was provided for him at Sens. But he had grown accustomed to Pontigny, and had led a pleasant life there. On his first arrival he had attempted asceticisms, but his health had suffered, and his severities had been relaxed. He was out of spirits at his departure. His tears were flowing. The abbot cheered him up, laughed at his dejection, and told him there was nothing in his fate so particularly terrible. Becket said that he had dreamt the night before that he was to be martyred. " Martyrdom ! " laughed the abbot ; " what has a man who eats and drinks like you to do with martyrdom ? The cup of wine which you drink has small affinity with the cup of martyrdom." " I confess," said Becket, " that I indulge in pleasures of the flesh. Yet the good God has deigned to reveal my fate to me." * Sad at heart, the archbishop removed to Sens ; yet if the pope stood firm, all might yet be well. ernnt, multum confido. Tot et tantse sunt necessitates, tanta ariditas et in proiiitas Komanoruni, ut interdum utatur licentia potestatis, procuret- que ex dispensatione quod reipublicse dicitur expddire, etsi noii expediat rcligioni." —To Becltet. Letters, 1166. 1 " ' Ergo niartyrio interibis ? Quid esculento et temulentoet martyri" Non bene conveniunt, nee in una sede morantur, calix vini quod pntas el calix niartyrii.' ' Fateor,' inquit, ' eorporeis vo- luptatibus iridulfieo. Bonus tainen Dominus, qui justificat iinpiuin, in- lig'io 'jignatus est revelare inysterium.' " — Mate-iah, vol. i p. 61. 64 lAft and Ttmen of CHAPTER VII. The archbishop's letters show conclusively that the Con stitutions were not the real causes of the dispute with the king. The king was willing to leave the Constitutions to be modified by the pope. The archbishop's contest, lying concealed in his favorite phrases, " saving my order," " sav- ing the honor of God," was for the supremacy of the Church over the Crown ; for the degradation of the civil power into the position of delegate of the pope and bishops. AH authority was derived from God. The clergy were the di- rect ministers of God. Therefore all authority was derived fi-om God through them. However well the assumption might appear in theory, it would not work in practice, and John of Salisbury was right in concluding that the pope would never sanction an assumption which, broadly stated and really acted on, would shake the fabric of the Church throughout Europe. Alexandei- was dreaming of peace when the news reached him of the excommunications at Ve- zelay. The news that Chief Justice de Luci had hanged 600 felonious clerks in England would have caused him less annoyance. Henry's envoys brought with them the bishops' appeal, and renewed the demand for cardinal legates to be sent to end the quarrel. This time the pope decided that the legates should go, carrying with them powers to take off IJecket's censures. He prohibited Becket himself from pursuing his threats further till the cardinals' arrival. To Henry he sent a private letter — which, however, he per- mitted him to show if circumstances made it necessary-— declaring beforehand that any sentences which the arch- Thomas Becket. 66 bishop might issue against himself or his subjects should be void.' The humiliation was terrible ; Becket's victims were free, and even rewarded. John of Oxford came back from Rome with the Deanery of Salisbury. Worst of all, the cardinals were coming, and those the most dreaded of the whole body, Cardinal Otho and Cardinal William of Pavia. One of them, said John of Salisbury, was light and uncertain, the other crafty and false, and both made up of avarice. These were the ministers of the Holy See, for whose pretensions Becket was fighting. This was his estimate of them when they were to try his own cause. His letters at this moment were filled with despair. " Ridicule has fallen on me,'' he said, " and shame on the pope. I am to be obeyed no longer. I am betrayed and given to destruction. My de- position is a settled thing. Of this, at least, let the pope assure himself: never will I accept the Cardinal of Pavia for my judge. When they are rid of me, I hear he is to be my successor at Canterbury."^ Becket, however, was not the man to leave the field while life was in him. There was still hope, for war had broken out at last, and Henry and Lewis were killing and burning in each other's territories. If not the instigator, Becket was the occasion, and Lewis, for his own interests, would still be forced to stand by him. He was intensely superstitious. His cause, he was convinced, was God's cause. Hitherto God had allowed him to fail on account of his own deficien- cies, and the deficiencies required to be amended. Like certain persons who cut themselves with knives and lancet!, he determined now to mortify his flesh in earnest. Wnen settled in his new life at Sens, he rose at daybreak, prayed in his oratory, said mass, and prayed and wept again. Five times each day and night his chaplain flogged him. His food was bread and water, his bed the floor. A hair shirt 1 The Pope tecket's character. He felt it more than probable that mischief was meditated. He said that he must wait to see how the archbishop conducted himself. ■ Passionate as usual, the archbishop complained to the pope ; he intimated that only his holiness's orders pre- vented him from revenging his ill-treatment. Prudence, however, told him that if he was to make an effective use of the excommunications which the pope had trusted to him, he must for the present restrain himself. Twice again he saw the king at Tours, and afterwards at Amboise. Henry was reserved, but not unkind. The archbishop had pro- fessed a wish for peace. If his behavior after his return to England proved that he was in earnest in these profes- sions — if he remained quietly in his province, and made no further disturbances — the king said that he was prepared to show him every possible kindness. The king needed no more complete justification of his suspicions than an expression which Becket used in relating this conversation to his friend Herbert. " As the king was speaking," he said, " I thought of the words : ' All these things will I give thee if thou wilt fall down and worship me.' " It is evident on the face of the narrative that the king never gave the conscious sanction to violent measures against the bishops, which Becket pretended afterwards that he had received. In answer to his complaints at Amboise, Henry may have told him that the rights of the Bee of Canterbury should be assured, and that, if those rights had been impaired, satisfaction should be made to Thomas BecTcet. 85 him. To this last conference, and to some sucli words as these, the Count of Blois may have referred in his letter to the pope. But Becket atid his friends put a construction upon the promises which none knew better than they that Henry did not intend. It is as certain that Becket's own professions were no less equivocal — that when he spoke of peace he was thinking only of a peace of which he was to dictate the terms, and that he had already determined to reopen the war on a new stage on the instant of Iiis return to his cathedral. But the return was now determined on, be the conse- quences what they might. The English bishops had their friends among the cardinals. In the course of the autumn it became known in England that the archbishop had ap- plied for censures against the bishops, and that the pope had granted them. They advised the king to insist that Becket should bind himself by some more explicit engage- ments before he should be allowed to land, that he should be examined especially as to whether he had any letters of excommunication from Rome, and that if he were in pos- session of such letters he should surrender them. Henry preferred to trust to the archbishop's honor, or to the watchfulness of the wardens of the ports. He was weary of the struggle. Doubtless he had his misgivings, as the bishops had ; but he had made up his mind that the experi- ment should be tried, with, on his part at least, a faithful discharge of his own engagements. The archbishop had gone to Rouen in November to set- tle accounts with creditors who had advanced him money. He had meant to see Henry once more, but Henry wrote to say that the delay of his return had led to disquieting rumors which ought not to continue. He desired the arch- bishop to go back to Canterbury at once; and, that he might be subjected to no inconvenience on landing, he sent John of Oxfoi'd, whose person was well known, to accom- pany and protect him. John of Oxford's instructions were, 86 lAfe and Times of after seeing Becket safe at Canterbury, to go on to the young king and give orders for the immediate restoration of the property of the see. The die was cast. The archbishop resolved to go. There was abundant disaffection in England. In the spring of this very year the king had been obliged to suspend the sheriffs in every county, and ultimately to remove many of them, for extortion and oppression.' The clergy were lukewarm in his interests ; but there were better reasons for relying upon the nobles. The king had thrust a bridle in their mouths, restraining what they called their liberties, and many of them, as was afterwards proved, were ready to make common cause with the Church against the Crown. The archbishop was perfectly right in expecting to find among the laity a party who would stand by him. He went once more to Sens to take leave of his entertainers. After an affectionate parting with Lewis and the Queen of France, retaining still his old taste for magnificence, he rode down to the coast with an escort of a hundred cavaliers, and there once more, separated from him but by a few hours' sail, lay the white cliffs of England. It was thought likely, if it was not known for certain, that Becket would bring with him letters from the pope, and the introduction of such letters, if to the hurt of any English subject, was against the law, without a written license from the king. The duty of the wardens of the ports was to search the persons and the baggage of any one whom there was ground for suspecting, and on reaching the coast Becket learned that the three prelates who were to be excommunicated, the Sheriff of Kent, Sir Ranulf de Broc, and Sir Reginald de Warenne, one of the council of the young king, were waiting for him at Dover to ascertain whether he was the bearer of any such explosive missile. The future martyr was not select in his language. " Arch Jevih," " priests of Baal," " standard-bearers of the Balaam ' Benedict. Thomas Becket. 87 ites,'' " children of perdition," were the common phrases with which he described the unfortunate bishops who were thus trying to escape their sentences. To outwit their vigi- lance, a day or two before he meant to sail, he sent over a boy in a small vessel whose insignificant appearanqe would attract no attention. The boy or nun (for there is reason to suppose that the bearer was a woman disguised) pre- sented himself suddenly before the Archbishop of York in St. Peter's Oratory at Dover, placed the letter of suspension in his hands, and disappeared before he had time to learn its contents. In the same hour, and by the same instrument, the still more terrible letters of excommunication were served on the Bishops of London and Salisbury. Their precautions had been baffled. The shots had been fired which opened the new campaign, and the mark had been successfully hit. Sir Ranulf de Broc searched the town with a drawn sword for the audacious messenger, but the messenger had vanished. It would have gone ill with Becket had he landed in the midst of the storm which the delivery of the letters instantly kindled. The ground of the censures was the coronation of the young king. To excommunicate the bishops who had officiated was to deny the young king's title to the crown. The archbishop had come back then, it seemed, to defy the government and light a civil war. The next morning, when he and his friends were examining the vessel in which they were about to embark, an English boat ran into the harbor. Some one leaped on shore, and, coming straight to Herbert, told him that if the archbishop went to Dover he was a dead man ; the excommunications had set the country on fire. A rapid council was held. Several of the priests were frightened. The certain displeasure of the king was ad- mitted with a frankness which showed how little Becket really supposed that Henry would approve what he had .^one. Becket asked Herbert for advice. Herbert, always the worst adviser that he could have consulted, said that 88 lAfe and Times of they must advance or fall into disgrace. Let the archbishop go boldly forward, and he would tread the dragon under his feet. The worst that could befall him was a glorious martyrdom. Muc^ of this fine language may have been an after- thought. The archbishop, when a choice of conduct lay before him, was certain to choose the most rash. He de- cided, however, to avoid Dover, and on the morning of tlie 1st of December he sailed up the river to Sandwich, with his cross raised conspicuously above the figure-head of his ship. Sandwich was his own town. The inhabitants were lieges of the see, and a vast and delighted crowd was gath- ered on the quay to receive him. The change of destination was known at Dover Castle. Sir Reginald de Warenne, the Sheriff of Kent, and Ranulf de Broc, had ridden across, and had arrived at Sandwich before the archbishop landed. John of Oxford hurried to them with the king's orders that the archbishop was to be received in peace. They advanced in consequence without their arms, and inquired the mean- ing of the excommunication of the bishops. To their extreme surprise, they were told that the letters had been issued with the king's knowledge and permission. To so bold an assertion no immediate answer was possible. They pointed to his trairi, among whom were some French clergy. Strangers coming into England without a passport were required to swear allegiance for the time of their stay. The sheriff said that the priests must take the usual oaths. Becket scornfully answered that no clerk in his company sliould take any oath at all. He declined further conversa- tion, and bade them come to him after two days to the pal- ace of Canterbury if they had more to say. Becket passed the remainder of the day at Sandwich. Tlie next morning he set out for his cathedral. Seven years he had been absent, and for all tliose years his name had been a household word in castle and parsonage, grange and cabin. In England people sympathize instinctively Thomas Becket. 89 with every one who opposes the Crown, and between Sand- wich and Canterbury Becket was among his own tenants, to -whom he had been a gentler master than Ranulf de Broc. The short winter day's ride was one long triumphal proces- sion. Old men, women, and children lined the roads on their knees to beg his blessing. Clergy came at the head of their parishioners with garlands and banners. Boys chanted hymns. Slowly at a foot's pace the archbishop made his way among the delighted multitudes. It was evening before he reached Canterbury. He went direct to the cathedral. His face shone as he entered, " like the face of Moses when lie descended from the mount." He seated himself on his throne, and the monks came one by one and kissed him. Tears were in all eyes. " My lord," Herbert whispered to Him, " it matters not now when you depart hence. Christ has conquered. Christ is now king." " He looked at me." says Herbert, " but he did not speak." Strangely in that distant century, where the general his- tory is but outline, and the colors are dim, and the lights and shadows fall where modern imagination chooses to throw them, and the great men and women who figured on the world's stage are, for the most part, only names, the story of Becket, in these last days of it especially, stands out as in some indelible photograph, every minutest feature of it as distinct as if it were present to our eyes. We have the terrible drama before us in all its details. We see the actors, we hear their very words, we catch the tones of their voices, we perceive their motives; we observe them from day to day, and hour to hour; we comprehend and sympathize with the passions through the fierce collision of which the action was worked out to its catastrophe. The importance pf the questions which were at issue, the characters of the chief performers, and the intense interest with which hey were watched by the spectators, raise the biographies and etters in which the story is preserved to a level of literary excellence far beyond what is to be found in all contempo- rary writings. 90 Life and Times of The archbishop slept in his desolate palace. No prepara- tions had been made for him. The stores had not been laid in. The barns and byres were empty. Ranulf de Broc had swept up the last harvest, and had left the lands bare. In the morning (December 3) de Warenne and the sheriff reappeared with the chaplains of the three bishops. They had been led to hope, they said, that the archbishop would come home in peace. Instead of peace he had brought a Bword. By scattering excommunications without notice, he was introducing confusion into every department of the realm. The very crown was made dependent on the arch- bishop's will. The law of England was reduced to the arch- bishop's edicts. Such a assumption could not and would not be allowed. The excommunication of the bishops was a direct blow at the authority of the young king. For the archbishop's own sake they advised him, and in the king's name they commanded him, to take the censures off", or a time might come when he would regret his violence too late to repair it. Until the issue of the sentences against the three bishops, Alexander had not committed himself to any positive act in Becket's favor, and it had been to compromise the papacy distinctly in the quarrel that the pope's letters had been thus immediately discharged. Becket answered that the excommunications had been issued by the supreme pontiff, and that he could not undo tlie work of his superior. He admitted, with exasperating satire, that he was not dis- pleased to see his holiness defend the Church with his own hands. To punish men who had broken the law was not to show contempt of the king. He had himself complained to the king of the bishops' conduct, and the king had prom- Ldcd that he should have satisfaction. For the rest he ac- knowledged no right in tlie king or any man to challenge his conduct. He bore the spiritual sword, and did not mean to shrink from drawing it against sinners, whatever might ae the inconvenience. If the bishops would take an oath to Thomas Becket. 91 (ubmit to any sentence which the pope might pass upon them, he would strain a point and absolve them ; without Bueh an oath, never. The answer was carried to Dover. Foliot and the Bishop ot Salisbury were willing, it was said, to have sworn as Becket prescribed. The archbishop declared that he would spend the last farthing that he possessed rather than yield to such insolence. The young king was at Winchester.^ De Wa- renne hastened to him to report Becket's behavior, and probably to ask instructions as to what the bishops should do. They crossed eventually to the old king's court in Normandy, but not till after a delay of more than a fort- night at Dover. Obviously the conduct which they were to pursue was carefully canvassed and deliberately resolved upon. Becket himself, too, found it prudent to offer ex- planations, and send the Prior of Dover after De Warenue to Winchester to report the archbishop's arrival, and to ask peinnission for him to present himself. From the rapidity with which events now passed, the prior must have ridden night and day. Young Henry being still under age, the archbishop's messenger was received by his guardians, whom he found in towering indignation. The excommunication was regarded as an invitation to rebelliou, and had Henry died in August there undoubtedly would have been rebellion. " Does the archbishop mean to make pagans of us, with his suspensions and curses?" they said; "does he intend to upset the throne ? " The prior asked to be allowed to see the young king himself. He assured them that the arch- bishop had meant no injury to him. No one in the realm besides his father loved the prince more dearlj". The dis- pleasure was only that other hands than those of the pi'iinate had placed the crown upon his head. He repeated the story that the old king knew what was to be done to the bishops. He trusted that the young king would not refuse to receive a person who only desired to do him loyal service. 1 Not Woodstock, as is geiierdlly saiil. William of Canterbury, with ipecial reference to localities, sa;'3 Wiiitonia. 92 Life and Times of The court was evidently perplexed by the confident as- Bertions with respect to Henry. The Earl of Cornwall advised that Becket should be allowed to come ; they could hear from himself an explanation of the mystery. Geoffrey Ridel, the Archdeacon of Salisbury, happened, however, to be present. Ridel was one of Henry the Second's movt confidential advisers, whom Becket had cursed at Vezelay and habitually spoke of as an archdevil. He had been inti- mately acquainted with the whole details of the quarrel from its commencement, and was able to affirm positively that things were not as Becket represented. He recommended the guardians to consult the king before the archbishop was admitted ; and the Prior of Dover was, in consequence, dis- missed without an answer. The archbishop had committed himself so deeply that he could not afford to wait. His hope was to carry the coun- try with him before the king could interfere, or at least to have formed a party too strong to be roughly dealt with. The Prior of Dover not having brought back a positive prohibition, he left Canterbury professedly to go himself to Winchester : but he chose to take London in his way ; it was easy to say that he had been long absent ; that his flock required his presence ; that there were children to be con- firmed, candidates for the priesthood to be ordained — holy »ites of all kinds, too long neglected, to be attended to. There was no difficulty in finding an excuse for a circuit through the province ; and the archiepiscopal visitation as- sumed the form of a military parade. Few as the days had been since he had set his foot on the English shore, he had contrived to gather about him a knot of laymen of high birth and station. Quidam illustres, certain persons of dis- tinction, attended him with their armed retainers, and, sur- rounded by a steel-clad retinue with glancing morions and bristling lances, the archbishop set out for London a week after his return from the Continent. Rochester lay in his ray. Rochester Castle was one of the strongholds whiclr Thomas Beohet. 93 he had challenged for his own. The gates of the castle re- mained closed against him, but the townsmen received him as their liege lord. As he approached Southwark the cit- izens poured out to greet the illustrious Churchman who had dared to defy his sovereign. A vast procession of three thousand clergy and scholars formed on the road, and went before him chanting a Te Deum ; and this passionate dis- play had a deliberate and dangerous meaning which every one who took part in it understood. To the anxious eyes of the court it was a first step in treason, and in the midst of the shouts of the crowd a voice was distinguished, saying, " Archbishop, 'ware the knife ! " It was on December 13 that Becket reached London Bridge. He slept that night close by, at the palace of the old Bishop of Winchester. His movements had been watched. The next morning Sir Jocelyn of Arundel and another knight waited on him with an order from the court at Winchester to return i/lstantly to Canterbury, and to move no more about the realm with armed men. The arch- bishop had not ventured so far to be frightened at the first hard word. He received Sir Jocelyn as a king might re- ceive a rebel feudatory. With lofty fierceness he said he would go back at no man's bidding if Christmas had not been so near, when he desired to be in his cathedral.* " May I not visit my diocese ? " he demwided. " Will the king drive off the shepherd that the wolf may tear the flock ? Let God see to it ! " Arundel said that he had come to deliver the king's commands, not to dispute about them. " Carry back, then, my commands to your king," said the iirchbishop.'^ " Your commands ! " Arundel retorted ; " ad- dress your commands to those of your own order." Turn- ing sternly to the young lords in the archbishop's suite, 1 "Spiritu fervens respondit se nullatenus propter inhibitiocem bano regressurum, nisi quia tunc jam festus tam solemnis urgebat dies quo ec- tlesiae suae abesse noluit." * " Si et mandata mea regi vestro renunciaturl estia." — William of Canterbury. 94 lAfe and Times of he bade them remember their duties, and rode off with his companion. To obey was to lose the game. Instead of obeying, the archbishop went on to Harrow, a benefice of his own into which an incumbent had been intruded by the Crown. From Harrow he sent for the old Abbot of St. Albans, and dispatched him to Winchester with a list of complaints. At the same time, and to learn the strength of the party at court which he supposed to be ready to stand by him, he sent a monk — apparently William of Canterbury, who tella the story — on a secret and dangerous mission to the Ear] of Cornwall. The monk went disguised as a physician, Becket bidding him write word how things were going. The words in which he gave the order show his intention beyond possibility of question. The pretended physician was to go velut alter Oushy, and Cushy was the messenger who brought word to David that the Lord had avenged him of his enemies, and that thfe young king Absalom was dead.^ The Earl of Cornwall was well-disposed to Becket, but was true to his king and his country. When the rebellion actually broke out, three years after, the Earl of Cornwall's loyalty saved Henry's crown. He was willing to befriend the archbishop within the limits of law, but not to the extent upon which Becket counted. He received the dis- guised monk into his household ; he examined him closely as to the archbishop's intentions. He would perhaps have allowed him to remain, but a servant of the young king recognized the man through his assumed character as one »f Becket's immediate followers, two days after his arrival. The earl bade him begone on the instant, and tell his mas- ter to look to himself; his life was in peril. The Abbot of St. Albans had travelled more slowl; The discovery was a bad preparation for his receptioa Sir Jocelyn of Arundel had brought back Becket's insolen 1 2 Samael xviii. 31. Thomas Beehet. 95 answer, and the open disobedience of the order to return to Canterbury could be construed only as defiance. To the alarmed guardians it seemed as if an insurrection might break out at any moment. The abbot found the court at Breamore, near Fordingbridge, in Hampshire. He was admitted, and he presented his schedule of wrongs, which, after all, was trifling. The archbishop's clergy were forbidr den to leave the realm. He had been promised restitution of his property, but it had been given back to him in ruins. His game had been destroyed ; his woods had been cut down ; his benefices were detained from him. As a last outrage, since his return Sir Ranulf de Broc had seized a cargo of wine which he had broui;ht over with the old king's permission. The vessel in which it had arrived had been scuttled, and the crew had been incarcerated. God was injured when his clergy were injured, the abbot said, and in Becket's name he demanded redress. The abbot had spoken firmly, but in language and man- ner he had at least recognized that he was a subject address- ing liis sovereign. A priest in his train, with Becket's own temper in him, thundered out as the abbot had ended: " Tims saith the Lord Primate, ' Let man so think of us as ministers of Christ and stewards of the mysteries of God. If justice be not done as right demands, ye need not doubt that we will do our part and use the powers which God has committed to us.' " Tlie fierce message was delivered amidst scowling groups of knights and nobles. Hot youths clenched their fists and clutched their dagger-hilts. A courtier told the bold priest that, but for the honor of the king's presence, he should suffer for his insolence. Sir Reginald de Warenne, who was present, said, " The bows are bent on both sides." The Earl of Cornwall, fresh from his conference with Becket's secret messenger, muttered, " Ere Lent there will be wild work in England." The archbishop was still at Harrow when the abbot came 3ack with an account of his reception. Many things the 96 Life and Times of abbot must have been able to tell him which have been left unrecorded. Thus much, at any rate, must have been made plain — that the archbishop could not count on any imme- diate armed intervention. For the moment, at least, he would be left to face alone the storm which he had raised. The best that he could now hope to eflfect would be to bury himself and his enemies in common ruin. He foretold his fate to the abbot, and, resisting entreaties to spend Christ- mas at St. Albans, went back to Canterbury, where he had still work before him which could be accomplished only in his own cathedral. Thomas BecTcet. 97 CHAPTER X. The story now turns to Henry's court in Normandy. Between Southampton and the Norman coast communica- tions were easy and rapid ; and the account of the arrival of the censured bishops, with the indignant words which burst from the king at the unwelcome news which he heard from them for the first time, is an imperfect legend in which the transactions of many days must have been epit- omised. The bishops did not leave England till the 20th or 21st of 'December,* and before their appearance the king must have heard already not only of the excommunications and of the daring misuse of his own name, but of the armed progress to London, of the remarkable demonstration there, of the archbishop's defiance of the government, of the mis- sion of the Abbot of St. Albans, of the threats of the priest, and of the imminent danger of a general rebellion. Dur- ing the first three weeks of this December many an anxious council must have been held in the Norman court, and many a scheme talked over and rejected for dealing with this im- practicable firebrand. What could be done with him ? No remedy was now available but a violent one. The law could not restrain a man who claimed to be superior to law and whose claims the nation was not prepared directly to deny. Three centuries later the solution would have been a formal trial, with the block and axe as the sequel of a judicial sentence. Ecclesiastical pretensions were still for- midable under Tudors, but the State had acquired strength 1 Herbert saya that they arrived at Bayeux paucis diebus ante natalem 'Domini. T 38 Life and Times of to control tliem. In our own day the phantom has been exorcised altogether, and an archbishop who used Backet's language would be consigned to an asylum. In Becket'a own time neither of these methods was possible. Becket himself could neither be borne with, consistently with the existence of the civil government, nor resisted save at the risk of censures which even the king scarcely dared to en- counter. A bishop might have committed the seven deadly sins, but his word was still a spell which could close the gates of heaven. The allegiance of the people could not be depended upon for a day if Becket chose to declare the king excommunicated, unless the pope should interfere ; and the pope was an inadequate resource in a struggle for the supremacy of the Church over the State. It was not until secular governments could look popes and bishops in the face, and bid them curse till they were tired, that the relations of Church and State admitted of legal definition. Till that time should arrive the ecclesiastical theory was only made tolerable by submitting to the checks of tacit compromise and practical good sense. Necessities for compromises of this kind exist at all times. In the most finished constitutions powers are as- signed to the different branches of the State which it would be inconvenient or impossible to remove, yet which would cause an immediate catastrophe if the theory were made the measure of practice. Tlie Crown retains a prerogative at present which would be fatal to it if strained. Par- liament would make itself intolerable if it asserted the entire privileges wliich it legally possesses. The clergy in the twelfth century were allowed and believed to be minis- ters of God in a sense in which neither Crown nor baron dared appropriate the name to themselves. None the less the clergy could not be allowed to reduce Crown and barons into entire submission to themselves. If either churchman or king liroke tlic tacit bargain of mutual moderation which enabled them to work together harmoniously, thp relations Thomas Bechet. 99 oetween the two orders might not admit of more satisfac- tory theoretic adjustment ; but there remained the resource to put out of the way tlie disturber of the peace. Fuel ready to kindle was lying dry throughout Henry's dominions. If Becket was to be allowed to scatter excom- munications at his own pleasure, to travel through the country attended by knights in arms, and surrounded by adoring fools who regarded him as a supernatural being, it was easy to foresee the immediate future of England and of half France. To persons, too, who knew the archbishop as well as Henry's court knew him, the character of the man himself who was c:iusiug so much anxiety must havie been peculiarly irritating. Had Becket been an Anselm, he might have been credited with a desire to promote the interests of the Church, not for power's sake, but for the sake of those spiritual and moral influences which the Catholic Church was still able to exert, at least in some happy instances. But no such high ambition was to be traced either in Becket's agitation or in Becket's own dis- position. He was still the self-willed, violent, unscrupulous chancellor, with the dress of the saint upon him, but not the nature. His cause was not the mission of the Church to purify and elevate mankind, but the privilege of the Church to control the civil government, and to dictate the law in virtue of magical powers which we now know to have been a dream and a delusion. His personal religion was not the religion of a regenerated heart, but a religion of self-torturing asceticism, a religion of the scourge and the hair shirt, a religion in which the evidences of grace were to be traced not in humbleness and truth, but in the worms and maggots which crawled about his body. He was the impersonation, not of what was highest and best in the Catholic Church, but of what was falsest and worst. The fear which he inspired was not the reverence willingly offered to a superior nature, but a superstitious terror like that felt for witches and enchanters, which brave men a* the call of a higher duty could dare to defy. 100 Life and Times of No one knows what passed at Bayenx during the first weeks of that December. King and council, knights and nobles, squires and valets must have talked of little else but Becket and liis doings. The pages at Winchester laid their hands on their dagger-hilts when the priest delivered his haughty message. The peers and gentlemen who sur- rounded Henry at Bayeux are not likely to have felt more gently as each day brought news from England of some fresh audacity. At length a few days before Christmas, the three bishops arrived. Two were under the curse, and could not be admitted into the king's presence. The Arch- bishop of York, being only suspended, carried less contami- nation with him. At a council the archbishop was intro- duced, and produced Alexander's letters. From these it appeared not only that he and the other bishops were de- nounced by name, but that every person who had taken any part in the young king's coronation was by implication ex- communicated also. It is to be remembered that the king had received a positive sanction for the coronation from Alexander ; that neither he nor the bishops had received the prohibition till the ceremony was over ; and that the pro- hibitory letter, which it is at least possible that the king would have respected, had been kept back by Becket himself. The Archbishop of York still advised forbearance, and an appeal once more to Rome. The pope would see at last what Becket really was, and would relieve the country of him. But an appeal to Rome would take time, and England meanwhile might be in flames. "By God's eyes," said the king, " if all are excommunicated who were con- cerned in the coronation, I am excommunicated also." Some one (the name of the speaker is not mentioned) said that there would be no peace while Becket lived. "With the fierce impatience of a man bafiled by a problem which he has done his best to solve, and has failed through no fault of his own, Henry is reported to have exclaimed r " Is ■his varlet that I loaded with kindness, that came first to Tltomas Bechet. 101 court to me on a lame mule, to insult me and my children, and take my crown from me ? What cowards have I about me, that no one will deliver me from this lowborn priest ! " It is very likely that Henry used such words. The greatest prince that ever sat on throne, if tried as Henry had been, would have said the same ; and Henry had used almost the same language to the bishops at Chinon in 1166. But it is evident that much is still untold. These passionate denun- ciations can be no more than the outcome of long and in- effectual deliberation. Projects must have been talked over and rejected ; orders were certainly conceived which were to be sent to the archbishop, and measures were de- vised for dealing with him short of his death. He was to be required to absolve the censured bishops. If he refused, he might be sent in custody to the young king, he might be brought to Normandy, he might be exiled from the English lominions, or he might be imprisoned in some English sastle. Indications can be traced of all these plans; and something of the kind would probably have been resolved upon, although it must have been painfully clear also that, without the pope's help, none of them would really meet the difficulty. But the result was that the knights about the court, seeing the king's perplexity, determined to take the risk on themselves, and deliver both him and their country. If the king acted, the king might be excommuni- cated, and the empire might be laid under interdict, with the consequences which every one foresaw. For their own nets the penalty would but fall upon themselves. They did not know, perhaps, distinctly what they meant to do, but something might have to be done which the king must con- demn if they proposed it to him. But being done unknown, He Trould have found it afterwards well done. Impetuous loyalty to the sovereign was in the spirit of the age. 102 Ufe and Times of Among the gentlemen about his person whom Henry had intended to employ, could he have resolved upon the instructions Vfhich were to be given to them, were four knights of high birth and large estate — Sir Reginald Fitz- urse, of Somersetshire, a tenant in chief of the Crown, whom IJecket himself had originally introduced into the court ; Sir Hugh de Morville, custodian of Knaresborough Castle, and justiciary of Northumberland ; Sir William de Tracy, half a Saxon, with royal blood in him ; and Sir Richard le Breton, who had been moved to volunteer in the service by another instance of Becket's dangerous meddling. Le Bre- ton was a friend of the king's brother William, whom the archbishop had separated from the lady to whom he was about to be married, on some plea of consanguinity. Sir William de Mandeville and others were to have been joined in the commission. But these four chose to anticipate both their companions and their flnal orders, and started alone.' Their disappearance was observed. An express was sent to recall them, and the king supposed that they had re- turned. But they had gone by separate routes to separate ports. The weather was fair for the season of the year, with an east wind perhaps ; and each had found a vessel without difficulty to carry him across the Channel. The rendezvous was Sir Ranulf de Broc's castle of Saltwood, near Hythe, thirteen miles from Canterbury. The archbishop meanwhile had returned from his adven- turous expedition. The young king and his advisers had determined to leave him no fair cause of complaint, and had sent orders for the restoration of his wine and the release of the captured seamen ; but the archbishop would not wait 1 Mandeville came afterwards to Canterbury, and being asked what he had been prepared to do if he had fonnd the archbishop alive, he said "that he would have taken the archbishop sharply to task for his attacks upon his sovereign : if the archbishop had been reasonable, there would have been peace; if he had persisted in his obstinacy and presumption, beyond doubt he would have been compelled to yield." Mandeville, indis- putably, had direct instructions from the king, -r- Materials, vol. i. p. 12C Thomas Becket. 103 for the State to do him justice. On Christmas Eve he was fiirther exasperated by the appearance at the gate of his palace of one of his sumpter mules, which had been brutally- mutilated by Sir Ranulf de Broc's kinsman Robert. " The viper's brood," as Herbert de Bosham said, " were lifting up their heads. The hornets were out. Bulls of Bashan com- passed the archbishop round about." The Earl of Corn- wall's warning had reached him, but " fight, not flight," was alone in his thoughts. He, too, was probably weary of the strife, and may have felt that he would serve his cause more effectually by death than by life. On Christmas day he preached in the cathedral on the text " Peace to men of good will." There was no peace, he said, except to men of good will. He spoke passionately of the trials of the Church. As he drew towards an end he alluded to the pos- sibility of his own martyrdom. He could scarcely articu- late for tears. The congregation were sobbing round him. Suddenly his face altered, his tone changed. Glowing with anger, with the fatal candles in front of him, and in a voice of thunder, tlie solemn and the absurd strangely blended in the overwhelming sense of his own wrongs, he cursed the intruders into his churches; he cursed Sir Ranulf de Broc; he cursed Robert de Broc for cutting off his mule's tail ; he cursed by name several of the old king's most intimate councillors who were at the court in Normandy. At each fierce imprecation he quenched a light, and dashed down a candle. "As he spoke," says the enthusiastic Herbert, "you saw the very beast of the pro|ihpt's vision, with the face of a lion and the face of a man. ' He had drawn the spiritual sword, as he had sworn thdt tie would. So expe- rienced a man of the world couhi not have failed to foresee that he was provoking passions which would no longer respect his office, and that no I'ising in England would now be in time to save him. He was in better spirits, it was observed, after he had discharged his anathema. The Christmas festival was held in the hall. Asceticism was a 104 lAfe and Times of virtue which was never easy to him. He indulged his natu- ral inclinations at all permitted times, and on this occasion he ate and drank more copiously than usual. The next day Becket received another warning that he was in personal danger. He needed no friends to tell him that. The only attention which he paid to these messages WIS to, send his secretary Herbert and his crossbearer Alex- {tndjr Llewellyn to France, to report his situation to Lewis and to the Archbishop of Sens.^ He told Herbert at part- ing that he would see his face no more. So passed at Canterbury Saturday, Sunday, and Mon- day, the 26th, 27th, and 28th of December. On that same Monday afternoon the four knights arrived at Saltwood. They were expected, for Sir Banulf with a party of men- at-arms had gone to meet them. There on their arrival they learned the fresh excommunications which had been pronounced against their host and against their friends at the court. The news could only have confirmed whatever resolutions they had formed. On the morning of the 29th they rode with an escort of horse along the old Boman road to Canterbury. They halted at St. Augustine's Monastery, where they were en- tertained by the abbot elect, Becket's old enemy, the scan- dalous Clarembald. They perhaps dined there. At any rate they issued a proclamation bidding the inhabitants re- main quiet in their houses, in the king's name, and then, w':h some of Clarembald's armed servants in addition to th>.' own party, thisy went on to the great gate of the archbishop's palace. Leaving their men outside, the four knights alighted and entered the court. They unbuckled their sworle to write both to lh( Bishop of Poitiers and to the Archbishop of Sens, if he was uuable to writ« to Rome because the passages were stopped, does not appear. Thomas Bechet. 121 decided the qttestioft.' Alexander would do well, however, John of Salisbury thought, to pronounce the canonization with as little delay as possible The epidemic was still in its infancy. The miracles al^ ready mentioned had been woi'ked in comparative privacy in the first few weeks which succeeded the martyrdom. Be- fore the summer the archbishop's admirers were contending with each other in every part of Europe which could report the most amazing miracles that had been worked by his intervention or by the use of his name. Pilgrims began to stream to Canterbury with their tales of marvel and their rich thanksgiving offerings. A committee of monks was appointed to examine each story in detail. Their duty was to assure themselves that the alleged miracle was reality and not imagination. Yet thousands were allowed to pass as adequately and clearly proved. Every day under their own eyes the laws of nature were set aside. The aperture in the wall round the tomb contracted or enlarged according to the merit of the visitants. A small and delicate woman could not pass so much as her head through it to look at the relics. She Was found to be living in sin. A monster of a man possessed by a devil, but honestly desirous of sal- vation, plunged through, body and all. The spectators (Benedict among them, who tells the story) supposed it would be necessary to pull the wall down to get him free. He passed out with the same ease with which he had entered. But when the monks told him to repeat the ex- periment, stone and mortar had resumed their propertiiis. The blood gathered on the handkerchiefs from the pave- ment had shown powers so extraordinary that there was a universal demand for it. The difficulty from the limitation of quantity was got over in vai'ious ways. At firs*, it ex- ' " DubitatiiT a, plurimis an pars domini papae in qua stamu? de jastitia niteretur, sed earn a crimine gloriosus martyr absolvit, qui si fautor erat fichismatis ncquaquam tantis miraculis coruscaret." — To the Arclibishop of Sens. Letters, vol. ii. p. 263. 122 Life and Times of hibited a capacity for self-multiplication. A single droi' might be poured into a bottle, and the bottle would be found full. Afterwards a miraculous fountain broke out in the crypt, with the water from which the blood was mixed. The smallest globule of blood, fined down by successive recombinations to a fraction of unimaginable minuteness, imparted to the water the virtues of the perfect original. St. Thomas's water became the favorite remedy for all dis- eases throughout the Christian world, the sole condition of a cure being that doctor's medicines should be abjured. The behavior of the liquid, as described by Benedict, who re- lates what he professes to have continually seen, was eccen- tric and at first incomprehensible. A monk at the fountain distributed it to the pilgrims, who brought wooden boxes in which to carry it away. When poured into these boxes it would sometimes eflfervesce or boil. More often the box would split in the pilgrim's hand. Some sin unconfessed was supposed to be the cause, and the box itself, after such a misfortune, was left as an offering at the tomb. The split- ting action after a time grew less violent, and was confined to a light crack. One day a woman brought a box which became thus slightly injured. The monk to whom she gave it thought it was too good to be wasted, and was meditating in his own mind that he would keep it for himself. At the moment that the wicked thought formed itself the box flew to pieces in his hands with a loud crash. He dropped it, shrieking that it was possessed. Benedict and others ran in, hearing him cry, to find him in an agony of terror. The amusement with which Benedict admits that they listened to his story suggests a suspicion that in this instance at least the incident was not wholly supernatural.^ Finding boxes liable to these misfortunes, the pilgrims next tried stone Ijottles, but with no better success — the stone cracked like the wood. A youth at Canterbury suggested tin ; the burst- 1 "Hoc iniiaculum tam joco et risui multis extitit quam adniirationi.'' — Materials^ vol. ii. Thomas Becket. 123 ing mirade ceased, and the meaning of it was then per- oeived. The pilgrims were intended to carry St. Thomas's water round the world, hung about their necks in bottles which could be at once secure and sufficieiitlj' diminutive for transport. A vessel that could be relied on- being thus obtained, the trade became enormous. Though the holy thing might not be sold, the recipient of the gift expressed his gratitude by corresponding presents; and no diamond mine ever brought more wealth to its owners than St. Thomas's water brought to the monks of Canterbury. As time went on the miracles grew more and more pro- digious. At first weak eyes were made strong; then sight was restored which was wholly gone. At first sick men were made whole ; then dead men were brought back to life. At first there was the unconscious exaggeration of real phenomena ; then there was incautious embellishment. Finally, in some instances of course with the best inten- tions, there was perhaps deliberate lying. To which of these classes the story should be assigned which has now to be told the reader must decide for himself. No miracle in sacred liistory is apparently better attested. The more complete the evidence, the more the choice is narrowed to the alternative between a real supernatural occurrence and an intentional fraud. In the ,year which followed Becket's death there lived near Bedford a small farmer named Aylward. This Ayl- ward, unable to recover otherwise a debt from one of his neighbors, broke into his debtor's house, and took posses- sion of certain small articles of furniture to hold as security. The debtor pursued him, wounded him in a scuffle, and car- ried him before the head constable of the district, who happened to be Aylward's personal enemy. A charge of burglary was brought against nim, with the constable's sup- port. Aylward was taken before the sheriff, Sir Richard Fitzosbert, and committed to Bedford Gaol to await his Vial. The gaol chaplain in the interval took charge of his 124 lAfe and Times of soul, gave him a whip with which to flog himself five times a day, and advised him to consign his cause to the Virgin, and especially to the martyr Thomas. At the end of a month he was brought before the justices at Leighton Buz- zard. The constable appeared to prosecute ; and his own story not being received as true, he applied for wager of battle with his accuser, or else for the ordeal of hot iron. Through underhand influence the judges refused either of these comparatively favorable alternatives, and sentenced the prisoner to the ordeal of water, which meant death by drowning or else dismemberment. The law of the Con- queror was still in force. The penalty of felony was not the axe or the gallows, but mutilation ; and the water ordeal being over, which was merely a form, Aylward, in the pres- ence of a large number of clergy and laity, was delivered to the knife. He bled so much that he was supposed to be dying, and he received the last sacrament. A compassionate neighbor, however, took him into his house, and attended to his wounds, which began slowly to heal. On the tenth night St. Thomas came to his bedside, made a cross on his forehead, and told liim that if he presented himself the next day with a candle at the altar of the Virgin in Bedford Church, and did not doubt in his heart, but believed that God was able and willing to cure him, his eyes would be restored. In the morning he related his vision. It was reported to the dean, who himself accompanied him to the altir the townspeople coming in crowds to witness the prom- ised miracle. The blinded victim of injustice and false evidence believed as he was directed, and prayed as he was dii'ected. The bandages were then removed from the empty eye sockets, and in the hollows two small glittering spots were seen, the size of the eyes of a small bird, with which Aylward pronounced that he could again see. He set off at once to offer his thanks to his preserver at Canterbury The rumor of the miracle had preceded him, and in LondoH lie was detained by the bishop till the truth had been in Thomas Becket. 125 quired into. The result was a deposition signed by the Mayor and Corporation of Bedford, declaring that they had ascertained the completeness of the mutilation beyond all possibility of doubt. Very curiously, precisely the same miracle was repeated "under similar conditions three years later. Some cavil had perhaiis been I'aised on the sufficiency of the evidence. The Imrgesses of a country town were not, it may have been thought, men of sufficient knowledge and education to be relied upon in so extraordinary a case. The very ability of a saint to restore parts of the human body which had beea removed may have been privately called in question, and to silence incredulity the feat was performed a second time. There appeared in Canterbury in 1176 a youth named Rogers, bringing with him a letter from Hugh, Bishop of Durham, to the prior of the monastery. The lettej- stated that in the preceding September the bearer had been convicted of theft, and had been mutilated in the usual manner. He had subsequently begged his living in the Durham streets, and was well known to every one in the town to be perfectly blind. In this condition he had prayed to St. Thomas. St. Thomas liad appeared to him in a red gown, with a mitre on his head and three wax candles in his hand, and had promised him restoration. From that moment his sight began to return, and in a short ♦ime he could discern the smallest objects. Though, as at Bodford, the eyes were modicce quantiiatis, exceedingly minute, the functions were perfect. The bishop, to leave no room for mistake, took the oaths of the executioner and the witnesses of the mutilation. The cathedral bells were rung, and thanksgiving services were offered to God and St. Thomas. So far the Bishop of Durham. But the story received a. further confirmation by a coincidence scarcely less singular. When the subject of the miracle came to Canterbury, the iadge who had tried him happened to be on a visit to th^ 126 Life and Times of monastery. The meeting was purely accidental. The judge had been interested in the boy, and had closely ob- served him. He was able to swear that the eyes which he then saw were not the eyes which had been cut out by the executioner at Durham, being different from them in form and color.^ When the minds of bishops and judges were thus affected, we cease to wonder at the thousand similar stories which passed into popular belief. Many of them are childish, many grossly ridiculous. The language of the archbishop on his miraculous appearances was not like his own, but was the evident creation of the visionary who was the occasion of his visit ; and his actions were alternately the actions of a benevolent angel or a malignant imp. But all alike were received as authentic, and served to swell the flood of illu- sion which overspread the Christian world. For four years the entire supernatural administration of the C'lunrh econ- omy was passed over to St. Thomas ; as if Heaven designed to vindicate the cause of the martyr of Canterbury by special and extraordinary favor. In vain during those years were prayers addressed to the Blessed Virgin; in vain the cripple brought his offerings to shrines where a miracle had never been refused before. The Virgin and the other dispensers of divine grace had been suspended from activity, that the champion of the Church might have the glory to himself. The elder saints had long gone to and fro on errands of mercy. They were now allowed to repose, and St. Thomas was all in all.^ 1 Mnlerlak, vol. i. p. 423. 2 William of Canterbury mentions the case of a man in distress who prayed without effect to the Virgin. "Hujusmodi prcc us," he pays, "siepiuset propensius instabat; similiter et aliorum sanctorum suffiigia postulabat, aed ad invocationeni sui nominis non exaudierunt, qui retro tempora sua glorificationis habuerunt, ut et sua tempora propitiationis martyr modernus haberet. Pridem cncurrerant quantum potuerunt el quantum debueriint sigiiis et prodigiis coruscaiites : nunc tandem erat el Dovo martyri currendum, nt in catalogi) sanctorum niir'iticus haberetur Thomas Bechet. 127 Greater for a time than the Blessed Virgin, greater than the saints! — nay, another superiority was assigned to him still more astounding. The sacrifice of St. Thomas was considered to be wider and more gracious in its operation than the sacrifice on Calvary. Foliot, Bishop of London, so long his great antagonist, was taken ill a few years after the murder, and was thought to be dying. He was speech- loss. The Bishop of Salisbury sat by him, endeavoring to hear his confession before giving him the sacrament. The voice was choked, the lips were closed ; he could neither confess his sins nor swallow his viaticum, and nothing lay before him but inevitable hell, when, by a happy thought, sacrament was added to sacrament — the wafer was sprin- kled with the water of St. Thomas, and again held to the mouth of the dying prelate. Marvel of marvels! the tight- ened sinews relaxed. The lips unclosed ; the tongue re- sumed its office ; and when all ghostly consolation had been duly offered and duly received, Foliot was allowed to re- cover. " O martyr full of mercy ! " exclaims the recorder of the miracle, " blessedly forgetful art thou of thy own injuries, who didst thus give to drink to thy disobedient and rebel- lious brother of the fountain of thy own blood. O deed without example ! act incomparable ! Christ gave his flesh and blood to be eaten and drunk by sinners. St. Thomas, who imitated Christ in his passion, imitates Him also in the sacrament. But there is this difference, that Christ damns those who eat and drink Him unworthily, or takes their -lives from them, or afflicts them with diseases. The blessed Thomas, doing according to his Master's prom- ise greater things than He, and being more full of mercy than He, gives his blood to his enemies as well as to his friends ; and not only does not damn his enemies, but calls Domino dispensante quas, a. quibus, et quibus temporibus fieri debeanL Eo namqae currente et magna spatia transcurrente, illia tanquam vetcra Bis et emeritis interim debebatur otium." — Matenah, vol. i. p. 290. 128 Life and Times of them back into the ways of peace. All men, therefore, maj come to him and drink without fear, and they shall find sal- vation, body and soul." ' The details of the miracles contain many interestiiig pict- ures of old English life. St. Thomas was kind to persons drowned or drowning, kind to prisoners, especially kind to children. He was interested in naval matters — launching ■vessels from the stocks when the shipwrights could not 111 va them, or saving mariners and fishermen in shipwrecks. According to William of Canterbury, the archbishop in his new condition had a weakness for the married clergy, many miracles being worked by him for a facaria. Dead lambs, geese, and pigs were restored to life, to silence Sadducees who doubted the resurrection. In remembrance of his old sporting days, the archbishop would mend the broken wings and legs of hawks which had suffered from the herons. Boys and girls found him always ready to listen to their small distresses. A Suffolk yeoman, William of Ramshott, had invited a party to a feast. A neighbor had made him a present of a cheese, and his little daughter Beatrice had been directed to put it away in a safe place. Beatrice did as she was told, but went to play with her brother Hugh, anc" forgot what she had done with it. The days went on ; the feast day was near. The children hunted in every cor- nel of the house, but no cheese could be found. The near- est town was far off". They had no money to buy another if they could reach it, and a whipping became sadly prob- able. An idea struck the little Hugh. " Sister," he said, " I have heard that the blessed Thomas is good and kind. Let us pray to Thomas to help us." They went to their beds, and, as Hugh foretold, the saint came to them in their dreams. " Don't you remember,'' he said, " the old crock in the back kitchen, where the butter used to be kept?' They sprang up, and all was well. The original question between the king and the arch 1 MaUriaU, vol. i. pp. 251, 252. Thomas Bechet. 129 bishop still agitated men's minds, and was still so far from practical settlement that visions were necessary to conver^ the impenitent. A knight of the court, who contended for the Constitutions of Clarendon, and continued stubborn, was struck with paralysis. Becket came and bade him observe that the Judge of truth had decided against the king by signs and wonders, and that it was a sin to doubt any fur- thea\ The knight acknowledged his error. Others were less penetrable. The miracles, it was still said, might be deceptive ; and, true or false, miracles could not alter mat- ters of plain right or wrong. Even women were found who refused to believe ; and a characteristic story is told, in which we catch a glimpse of one of the murderers. A party of gentlemen were dining at a house in Sussex. Hugh de Morville was in the neighborhood, and while they were sitting at dinner a note was brought in from him ask- ing one of the guests who was an old acquaintance to call and see him. The person to whom the note was addressed read it with signs of horror. When the cause was ex- plained, the lady of the house said, " Is that all ? What is there to be alarmed about ? The priest Thomas is dead : well, why need that trouble us ? The clergy were putting their feet on the necks of us all. The archbishop wanted to be the king's master, and he has not succeeded. Eat your victuals, neighbor, like an honest man." The poor lady expressed what doubtless many were feeling. An ex- ample was necessary, and one of her children was at once taken dangerously ill. The county neighbors said it was a judgment ; she was made to confess her sins and carry her child to Canterbury to be cured, where, having been the subject of divine interposition, he was " dedicated to God " and was brought up a monk. . Through the offerings the monastery at Canterbury be- came enormously rich, and riches produced their natural effect Giraldus Cambrensis, when he paid a visit there a few years later, found the mo. ks dining more luxuriously 9 130 Life and Timex of than the king. According to Nigellus, the precentor of the cathedral, their own belief in the wonders which they daily witnessed was not profound, since in the midst of them Nigellus could write deliberately, as the excuse for the prevalent profligacy of churchmen, " that the age of mir- acles was past." It was observed, and perhaps commented on, that unless the offerings were handsome the miracles were often withheld. So obvious was this feature that William of Canterbury was obliged to apologize for it. " The question rises," he says, " why the martyr takes such delight in these donations, being now, as he is, in heaven, where (xjvetousness can have no place. Some say that the martyr, when in the body, on the occasion of his going into exile, borrowed much money, being in need of it for his fellow exiles, and to make presents at court. Being unable to repay his creditors in life, he may have been anxious after death that his debts should be discharged, lest his good name should suffer. And therefore it may be that all these kings and princes, knights, bishops, priests, monks, nuns, all ages and conditions, are inspired by God to come in such troops and take so many vows on them to grant pensions and annuities " ' There is no occasion to pursue into further details the history of this extraordinary alliance between religion and lying, which forced on Europe the most extravagant sacer- dotalism by evidence as extravagant as itself. By an ap- propriate affinity the claims of the Church to spiritual supremacy were made to rest on falsehood, whether uncon- scious or deliberate, and when the falsehood ceased to be credible the system which was based upon it collapsed. Thus all illusions work at last their own retribution. Eccle- siastical miracles are not worked in vindication of purity of life or piety of character. They do not intrude themselves into a presence to which they can lend no increase of beauty Bnd furnish no additional authority. They are the spurious 1 Materials^ vol. i. p. 327. Thomas Becket. 131 offspring of the passion of theologians for their own most extravagant assumptions. They are believed, they becomt the material of an idolatry, till the awakened conscience of the better part of mankind rises at last in revolt, and the fantastic pretensions and the evidence alleged in support of them depart together and cumber tlie world no more. We return to authentic history. 132 Life xnd Times af CHAPTER Xn. When the news of the catastrophe at Canterbury arrived in Normandy, the king was for a time stunned. None knew better than he the temper of his subjects on the pres- ent condition of the dispute with the Church. The death of the great disturber was natural, and may, perhaps, have been inevitable. Nevertheless, if the result of it as seemed too likely to be the case, was his own excommunication and an interdict on his dominions, a rebellion in Normandy was certain, and a rebellion in England was only too prob- able. Firm as might have been his own grasp, his hold on his continental duchies was not strengthened by his English sovereignty. The Norman nobles and prelates saw their countiy sliding into a province of the island kingdom which their fathers had subdued. If they were to lose their inde- pendence, their natural affinity was towards the land with which they were geographically combined. The revolu- tionary forces were already at work which came to maturity in the next generation, and if Normandy and Anjou were laid under interdict for a crime committed in England and for an English cause, an immediate insurrection might be anticipated with certainty. The state of England was scarcely more satisfactory. The young princes, who had been over-indulged in childhood, were showing symptoms of mutiny. The private relations between an English sov- ereign and his family were not yet regarded as the prop- erty of hia subjects ; the chroniclers rarely indulged in de- tails of royal scandals, and the dates of Henry's infidelities are vaguely given. Giraldus says that he remained true to his queen till she tempted her sons into rebellion, but Elea> Thomas Becket 133 tior herself might have told the story differently, and the (ire which was about to burst so furiously may have been long smouldering. As to the people generally, it was evi- dent that Becket had a formidable faction among them. The humpbacked Earl of Leicester was dead, but his son, the new earl, was of the same temper as his father. The barons resented the demolition of their castles, which tho king had already begun, and the curtailment of their feudal authority. An exasperating inquiry was at that moment going forward into the conduct of the sheriffs. They had levied tax and toll at their pleasure, and the king's inter- ference with them they regarded as an invasion of their liberties. Materials for complaint were lying about in abundance, and anything might be feared if to the injuries of the knights and barons were added the injuries of the Church, and rebellion could be gilded with a show of sanc- tity. The same spirit which sent them to die under the walls of Acre might prompt them equally to avenge the murder of the archbishop. Henry himself was a repre- sentative of his age. He, too, really believed that the clergy were semi-supernatural beings, whose curse it might be dangerous to undergo. The murder itself had been ac- companied with every circumstance most calculated to make a profound impression. The sacrilege was something, but the sacrilege was not the worst. Many a bloody scene had been witnessed in that age in church and cathedral ; abbots had invaded one another at the head of armed parties ; monks had fought and been killed within consecrated walls, and sacred vessels and sacred relics had been carried off among bleeding bodies. High dignitaries were occasionally poisoned in the sacramental wine, and such a crime, though serious, was not regarded as exceptionally dreadful. But Becket had but just returned to England after a formal rec- onciliation in the presence of all Europe. The King of France, the Count of Flanders, and the Count of Blois had pledged their words for his safety. He had been killed in 134 Life and Times of his own cathedral. He had fallen with a dignity, and even grandeur, which his bitterest enemies were obliged to ad- mire. The murderers were Henry's own immediate attend- ants, and Henry could not deny that he had himself used words which they might construe into a sanction of what they had done. Giraldus Cambrensis, who when young had seen and spoken with him, has left us a sketch of Henry the Second's appearance and character more than usually distinct. Henry was of middle height, with a thick short neck and a square chest. His body was stout and fleshy, his arms sinewy and long. His head was round and large, his hair and beard redflish-browD, his complexion florid, his eyes gray, with fire glowing at the bottom of them. His habits were ex- ceptionally temperate; he ate little, drank little, and was always extremely active. He was on horseback, at dawn, either hunting or else on business. When off his horse he was on his feet, and rarely sat down till supper time. He was easy of approach, gracious, pleasant, and in conversation remarkably agreeable. Notwithstanding his outdoor habits he had read largely, and his memory was extremely tena- cious. It was said of him, that he never forgot a face which he had once seen, or a thing which he had heard or read that was worth remembering. He was pious too, Gir- aldus says, pietate spectahilis. The piety unfortunately, in Giraldus's eyes, took the wrong shape of an over-zeal for justice, which brought him into his trouble with the Church, while to his technical "religious duties" he was less atten- tive than he ought to have been. He allowed but an hour a day for mass, and while mass was being said he usually thought of something else. To the poor he was profusely charitable, " filling the hungry with good things, and send- ing the rich empty away." He was largus in publico, parvtit in privato ; he spent freely in the public service and little on himself. As a statesman he was reserved, seldom show- ing his own thoughts. He was a good judge of character Thomas Becket. 135 rarely changing an opinion of a man which he had once formed. He was patient of opposition, and trusted much to time to find his way through difficulties. In war he was dangerous from his energy and his intellect. But he had no love for war, he was essentially a friend of peace, and after a battle could not control his emotion at the loss of his men. " In short," Giraldus concludes, " if God had but elected him to grace and converted him to a right understanding of the privileges of his Church, he would have been an incom- parable prince." ^ Such was Henry, the first of the Eng- lish Plantagenet kings, a man whose faults it is easy to blame, whose many excellences it would have been less easy to imitate — a man of whom may be said what can be affirmed but rarely of any mortal, that the more clearly Ms history is known the more his errors will be forgiven, the more we shall find to honor and admire. He was at Argenteuil when the fatal account was brought to him. He shut himself in his room, ate nothing for three days, and for five weeks remained in penitential seclusion. Time was precious, for his enemies were not asleep. Lewis and the Archbishop of Sens wrote passionately to the pope, charging the king with the guilt of the murder, and insist- ing that so enormous an outrage should be punished at once and with the utmost severity. The Archbishop of Sens, on his own authority as legate, laid Normandy under inter- dict, and Alexander, startled into energy at last, sent per- sons to the spot to confirm the archbishop's action, and to extend the censures over England. Henry roused himself at last. He dispatched the Archbishop of Rouen and two other bishops^ to explain what had happened, so far as ex- planation was possible ; and as the danger was pressing and bishops travelled slowly, three other churchmen, the Abbot 1 Giraldus, vol. v. p. 301, etc. 2 The Bishop of Worcester was one of them. The Bishop of Worcester •.ould explaia to the pope why his inhibitory letter on the coronation had never been delivered in England. 136 Life and Time» of of Valaise and the Archdeacons of Lisieux and Salisbury, pushed on before them. On their first arrival these envoys were refused an audience. When they were admitted to Alexander's presence at last, the attempt at palliation was listened to with horror. Two of Becket's clergy were at the papal court, and had possession of pope and cardinals, and it appeared only too likely that at the approaching Easter Alexander himself would declare Henry excommu- nicated. By private negotiations with some of the cardinals they were able to delay the sentence till the coming of the bishops. The bishops brought them a promise on Henry's part to submit to any penance which the pope might enjoin, and to acquiesce in any order which the pope might pre- scribe for the government of the clergy. An immediate catastrophe was thus averted. Cardinals Albert and Theo- dorio were commissioned at leisure to repair to Normandy and do what might be found necessary. To the mortifica tion of Lewis the censures were meanwhile suspended, and the interdict pronounced by the Archbishop of Sens was not confirmed. Henry on his part prepared to deserve the pope's forgive- ness. Uncertain what Alexander might resolve upon, he returned to England as soon as he had recovered his energy. lie renewed the orders at the ports against the admission of strangers and against the introduction of briefs from Rome, which might disturb the public peace. He then at once undertook a duty which long before had been enjoined upon him by Alexander's predecessor, and had been left too long neglected. Ireland had been converted to the Christian faitli by an apostle from the Holy See, but in seven centuries the Irish Church had degenerated from its original purity. Customs had crept in unknown in other Latin communions, and savoring of schism. No regular communication iiad been maintained with the authorities at Rome ; no confirmation o' abbots and bishops had been applied for oi- paid for. At Thomas Bechet. ' 137 a council held in 1151 a papal legate had been present, and an arrangement had be^n made for the presentation of the palls of the four Irish archbishoprics. But the legate's general account of the state of Irish affairs increased the pope's anxiety for more vigorous measures. Not only- Peter's pence and first fruits were not paid to himself — not only tithes were not paid to the clergy — but the most sacred rites were perverted or neglected. In parts of the island children were not baptized at all. Where baptism was observed, it more resembled a magical ceremony than a sacrament of the Church. Any person who happened to be present at a birth dipped the child three times in water or milk, without security for the use of the appointed words. Marriage scarcely could be said to exist. An Irish chief took as many wives as he pleased, and paid no respect to degrees of consanguinity.^ Even incest was not uncom- mon ^ among them. The clergy, though not immoral in the technical sense, were hard drinkers. The bishops lived in religious houses, and preferred a quiet life to interfering with lawlessness and violence. The people of Ireland, ac- cording to Giraldus, who was sent over to study their char- acter, were bloodthirsty savages, and strangers who settled among them caught their habits by an irresistible instinct. But Ireland, religious Ireland especially, had something in its history which commanded respect and interest. A thou- sand saints had printed their names and memories on Irish soil. St. Patrick and St. Bride had worked more miracles than even the water of St. Thomas. Apostles from Ireland had carried the Christian faith into Scotland, into Iceland, and into Scandinavia. The popes felt the exclusirn of so singular a country from the Catholic commonwealth to be a scandal which ought no longer to be acquiesced in. In 11.55 Pope Adrian 1 " Pleriqiie enim illonim quot volebant uxnres habebanf, et etiam cog- oatas suas gennanas habere solebant sibi uxorcs." — Benedict, vol. i. p. 28 ' "Noil incestus vitant." — Giialdus Cambrensis, vol. v. p. 138. 138 lAfe. and Times of had laid before Henry the Second the duty imposed on Christian princes to extend the truth among barbarous nations, to eradicate vice, and to secure Peter's pence to the Holy See ; and a bull had been issued, sanctioning and enjoining the conquest of Ireland.' Busy with more pressing concerns, Henry had put off the expedition from year to year. Meanwhile, the Irish chiefs and kings were quarrelling among themselves. MacMorrough of Leinster was driven out, and had come to England for help. The king hesitated in his answer ; but volunteers had been found for the service in Sir Robert Fitzstephen, Sir Maurice Prendergast, Sir Maurice Fitz- gerald, Earl Richard Strigul, with other knights and gen- tlemen who were eager for adventure; and a Norman occupation had been made good along the eastern coast of Munster and Leinster. The invasion had been undertaken without the king's consent. He had affected to regard it with disapproval ; and the Irish of the west, rallying from their first panic, were collecting in force to drive the in- truders into the sea. The desirableness of doing something to entitle him to the pope's gratitude, the convenience of absence from home at a time when dangerous notices might be served upon him, and the certainty that Alexander would hesitate to pronounce him excommunicated when engaged in a conquest which, being undertaken under a papal sanc- ^ {rish Catliolic historians pretend tliat the bull was a Norman forger}', riie bull was alleged to have been granted in 1155: in 1170 it was acted ipon. In 1171-72 a council was held at Cashel, in which the reforms de- manded by Pope Adrian were adopted, and the Irish Church was remod- elled, and a report of the proceedings was forwarded to Alexander the Third. In 1174 a confirmation of the original buU was published, profess- iiyj V have been signed by Alexander. In 1177 Cardinal Vivian came as ^-gate from Home, who, in a synod at Dublin, declared formally in the pope's name that the sovereignty of Ireland was vested in the English king, and eujoined the Irish to submit sub pmnd anathematis. It requires some hardihood to maintain in the face "f these undisputed facts that the pope was kept in ignorance tliat the island had been invaded and con- quered under a sanction doubly forged, and that Cardinal Vivian wai either a poj'ty to the fraud, or that when in Ireland he never discovered it. Thomas Becket, 139 tion, resembled a crusade, determined Henvy to use the opportunity, ind at last accomplish the mission which Adrian had imposed upon him. After his return from Normandy, he passed rapidly through England. He col- lected a fleet at Milford Haven, and landed at "Waterford on October 18, 1171. All Ireland, except the north, at once submitted. The king spent the winter in Dublin in a palace of wattles, the best lodging which the country could afford. In the spring he was able to report to Alexander that the obnoxious customs were abolished, that Catholic discipline had been introduced, and that tiie Irish tribute would be thenceforward punctually remitted to the papal treasury. Could he have remained in Ireland for another year, the conquest would have been completed ; but in April he was recalled to meet the. two cardinals who had arrived in Nor- mandy to receive his submission for Becket's death. The Irish annexation was of course a service which was permit- ted to be counted in his favor, but the circumstances of the murder, and Henry's conduct in connection with it, both before and aftei-, still required an appearance of scrutiny. Not the least remarkable feature in the story is that the four knights had not been punished. They had not been even arrested. They had gone together, after leaving Can- terbury, to De Morville's Castle of Knaresborough. They had been excommunicated, but they had received no further molestation. It has been conjectured that they owed their impunity to Becket's own claim for the exclusive jurisdic- tion of the spiritual courts in cases where spiritual persons vr&re concerned. But the wildest advocates of the immuni- ties of the Church had never dreamed of protecting laymen who had laid their hands on clerks. The explanation was that the king had acted honorably by taking the responsi- bility on himself, and had not condescended to shield his own reputation by the execution of men whose fault had been over-loyalty to himself. Elizabeth might have re- 140 Life and Times of membered with advantage the example of her ancestor wlien she punished Davison, under circumstances not wholly dissimilar, for the execution of the Queen of Scots. The liing met the cardinals at Caen in the middle of May. At the first interview the difficulty was disposed of which was most immediately pressing, and arrangements were made for a repetition of the ceremony which had been the occasion of the excommunication of the bishops. Prince Henry and the Princess Margaret were again crowned at AVinchester on the 27th of August by the Archbishop of Rouen and the Bishops of Evreux and Worcester, the same prelates who had gone on the mission to Rome. At Avranches on the 27th of September, at a second and more solemn assembly, the king confessed his guilt for the arch- bishop's death. He had not desired it, he said, and it had caused him the deepest sorrow ; but he admitted that he had used words which the knights had naturally misconstrued. He attempted no palliation, and declared himself willing to endure any penalty which the cardinals might be pleased to impose. The conditions with which the cardinals were satisfied implied an admission that in the original quarrel the right had lain with the king. All the miracles at Canterbury had made no diiference in this essential point. The king promised to continue his support to Alexander as long as Alexander continued to recognize him as a Catholic sov- ereign — as long, that is, as he did not excommunicate him. He promised not to interfere with appeals to Rome in ec- clesiastical causes, but with the reservation that if he had ground for suspecting an invasion of the rights of the crown, he might take measures to protect himself. He promised to abandon any customs complained of by the Church which had been introduced in his own reign; but such customs, he said, would be found to be few or none. He pardoned Becket's friends ; he restored the privileges and the estates of the see of Canterbui-y. Ftft- himself, he took Thomas Bechet. 141 the cross, with a vow to serve for three years in the Holy Land, unless the pope perceived that his presence was needed elsewhere. Meanwhile he promised to maintain two hundred Templars there for a year. On these terms Henry was absolved. Geoffrey Ridel and John of Oxford, Becket's active opponents, whom he had twice cursed, were promoted to bishoprics. The four knights must have been absolved also, since they returned to the court, and, like their master, took the vows as Crusaders. The monastic chroniclers consign them to an early and miserable death. The industry of Dean Stanley has dis- covered them, two years after the murder, to have been again in attendance on the sovereign. Tracy became Jus- ticiary of Normandy, and was at Falaise in 1174, when William the Lion did homage to Henry. De Morville, after a year's suspension, became again Justiciary of Nor- thumberland. Fitzurse apparently chose Ireland as the scene of his penance. A Fitzurse was in the second flight of Norman invaders, and was the founder of a family known to later history as the MacMahons, the Irish equivalent of the Son of the Bear. But Henry was not yet delivered from the consequences of his contest with Becket, and the conspiracy which had been formed against him under the shelter of Becket's name was not to be dissolved by the spell of a papal absolution. Lewis of France had taken up Becket's cause, not that felonious clerks might go unhanged, but that an English king might not divide his own land with him. The Earl pf Leicester had torn down Reginald of Cologne's altars, not alone because he was an orthodox Catholic, but that, with the help of an ambitious ecclesiasticism, he might .ireak the power of the crown. Through France, through England, through Normandy, a combination had been formed for Henry's humiliation, and although the pope no longer sanctioned it, the purpose was deeply laid, and could not lightly be surrendered. 142 Life and Times of Unable to strike at his rival as a spiritual outlaw, Lewis found a point where he was no less vulnerable in the jealousy of his queen and the ambition and pride of his sons. His aim was to separate England from its French dependencies. He, and perhaps Eleanor, instigated Prince Henry to demand after the second coronation that his father should divide his dominions, and make over one part or the other to him as an independent sovereign. The king of course refused. Prince Henry and his wife escaped to Lewis per consilium comitum et bnronum Anglice et Nor- mannicB qui patrem suum odio hahehani?- The younger princes, Richard and Geoffrey, followed them ; and a coun- cil was held at Paris, where the Count of Flanders the Count of Boulogne, William the Lion, and the Earl of Huntingdon from Scotland, and the English and Norman disaffected nobles, combined with Lewis for a general attack upon the English king. England was to rise. Normandy was to rise. William was to invade Northumberland. The Count of Flanders was to assist the English insurgents in the eastern counties. Lewis himself was to lead an army into Normandy, where half the barons and bishops were ready to join him. The three English princes, embittered, it may be, by their mother's injuries, swore to make no peace with their father without consent of their allies. For a time it seemed as if Henry must be overwhelmed. Open enemies were on all sides of him. Of his professed friends too many were disloyal at heart. The Canterbury frenzy added fuel to the conflagration by bringing God into the field. The Earl of Norfolk and Lord Ferrars rose in East Anglia. Lewis and young Henry crossed the frontier into Normandy. The Scots poured over the Tweed into Northumberland. Ireland caught the contagion unin- vited; the greater part of the force which had remained there was recalled, and only a few garrisons were left Had Alexander allowed the Church to lend its help, thf I Benedict. Thomas Beehet. 143 King must have fallen ; but Alexander honorably adhered to his engagement at Avranches. The king himself remained on the continent, struggling as he best could against war and treason. Chief Justice de Luci and Humfrey de Bohun faced the Scots beyond New- castle, and drove them back to Berwick. In the midst of their success they learned that the Earl of Leicester had landed in Norfolk with an army of Flemings. They left the north to its fate. They flew back. Lord Arundel joined them, and the old Earl of Cornwall, who befriended Becket while he could, but had no sympathies with rebel- lion. They fell on the Flemings near Bury St. Edmunds, and flung them into total wreck. Ten thousand were killed. Leicester himself and the rest were taken, and scarce a man escaped to carry back the news to Grave- lines.' The victory in Norfolk was the first break in the cloud. The rebellion in England had its back broken, and waver- ers began to doubt, in spite of the miracles, whether God was on its side. Bad news, however, came from the north. The Scots flowed back, laying waste Cumberland and Northumberland with wild ferocity. At the opening of the summer of 1174 another army of French, Flemings, and insurgent English was collected at Gravelines to re- venge the defeat at Bury, and this time the Earl of f landers and Prince Henry were to come in person at the head of it. An invasion so lead and countenanced could only be re- sisted by the king in person. The barons had sworn alle- giance to the prince, and the more loyal of them might be uncertain in what direction their duties lay. Sad and stern, prepared for the worst, yet resolute to contend to the last against the unnatural coalition, Henry crossed in July to Southampton ; but, before repairing to London to col- lect his forces, he turned aside out of his road for a singular and touching purpose. 1 October 16, 1173. 144 lAff. and Times of Although the conspiracy against which he was fighting was condemned by the pope it had grown nevertheless top evidently out of the contest with Becket, which had ended BO terribly. The combination of his wife and sons with big other enemies was something off the course of nature — strange, dark, and horrible. He was abler than most of Jiis contemporaries, but his piety was (as with most wise rcsn) a check upon his intellect. He, it is clear, did not share in the suspicion that the miracles at the archbishop's tomb were the work either of fraud or enchantment. He was not a person who for political reasons would affect emotions which he despised. He had been Becket's friend. Becket had been killed, in part at least, through his own fault ; and, though he might still believe himself to have been essentially right in the quarrel, the miracles showed that the archbishop had been really a saint. A more com- plete expiation than the pope had enjoined might be neces- sary before tlie avenging spirit, too manifestly at work, could be pacified. From Southampton he directed his way to Canterbury, where the bishops had been ordered to meet him. He made offerings at the various churches which he passed on his way. On reaching Harbledown, outside the city, he alighted at the Chapel of St. Nicholas, and thence went' on foot to St. Dunstan's Oratory, adjoining the wall. At the oratory lie stripped off his usual dress. He put on a hair penitential shirt, over which a coarse pilgrim's cloak was thrown ; and in this costume, with bare and soon bleeding feet, Henry, King of England, Lord of Ireland. Duke of Normandy, and Count of Anjou, walked through the streets to the cathedral. Pausing at the spot where the archbishop had fallen, and kissing the stone, he descended into the jrypt to the tomb, burst into tears, and flung himself on the ground. There, surrounded by a group of bishops, knights. iind monks, he remained long upon his knees in silen' 1 July 12. Thomas ^echet. 145 prayer. The Bishop of London said for him, what he had Buid at Avranches, that he had not commanded the murder, but had occasioned it by his hasty words. When the bishop ended, he rose, and repeated his confession with his own lips. He had caused the archbishop's death ; therefore he had come in person to acknowledge his sin, and to entreat the brothers of the monastery to pray for him. At the tomb he oflFered rich silks and wedges of gold. To the chapter he gave lands. For himself he vowed to erect and endow a religious house, which should be dedi- cated to St. Thomas. Thus amply, in the opinion of the monks, reconciliari meruit, he deserved to be forgiven. But the satisfaction was still incomplete. The martyr's injuries, he said, must be avenged on his own person. He threw off his cloak, knelt again, and laid his head upon the tomb. Each bishop and abbot present struck him five times with a whip. Each one of the eighty monks struck him thrice. Strange scene ! None can be found more charac- teristic of the age ; none more characteristic of Henry Plan- tagenet. The penance done, he rose and resumed his cloak ; and there by the tomb through the remainder of the July day, and through the night till morning, he remained silently sitting, without food or sleep. The cathedral doors were left open by his orders. The people of the city came freely 'o gape and stare at the singular spectacle. There was the terrible King Henry, who had sent the knights to kill their archbishop, sitting now in dust and ashes. The most in- eenious cunning could not have devised a better method of winning back the affection of his subjects ; yet with no act of king or statesman had ingenious cunning ever less to do. In the morning he heard mass, and presented offerings at .he various altars. Then he became king once more, and rode to London to prepare for the invader. If his humilia- tion was an act of vain superstition, Providence encouraged him in his weakness. On the day which followed it William lu 146 lAfe and Times of the Lion vras defeated and made prisoner at Alnwick. A week later came news that the army at Gravelines had dissolved, and that the invasion was abandoned. Delivered from peril at home, Henry flew back to France and flung Lewis back over his own frontier. St. Thomas was now supposed to be fighting for King Henry. Imagination be- comes reality when it gives to one party certainty of vic- tory, to the other the anticipation of defeat. By the spring of 1175 the great combination was dissolved. The princes returned to their duty ; the English and Norman rebels to their allegiance ; and with Alexander's mediation Henry and Lewis and the Count of Flanders were for a time onoe more reconciled. Thomas Beeket. 147 CHAPTER XIII, Though the formal canonization of Beeket could not be accomplished with the speed which his impatient friends demanded, it was declared with the least delay which the necessary forms required. A commission which was sent from Rome to inquire into the authenticity of the miracles having reported .'•atisfactorily, the promotion of the arch- bishop was immediately decreed, and the monks were able to pray to him without fear of possible irregularity. Due honor having been thus paid to the Church's champion, it became possible to take up again the ever-pressing problem of the Church's reform. Between the pope and the king there had never really been much difference of opinion. They were now able to work harmoniously together. A successor for Beeket at Canterbury was found in the Prior of Dover, for whose good sense we have a sufficient guarantee in the abhorrence with which he was regarded by the ardent champions of Church supremacy. The reformation was commenced in Normandy. After the ceremony at Avranches the cardinals who had come from Rome to receive Henry's confession held a council there. The resolutions arrived at show that the picture of the condition of the clergy left to us by Nigellus is not really overdrawn. It was decided that children were to be no more admitted to the cure of souls — a sufficient proof that children had been so admitted. It was decided that the sons of priests should not succeed to their father's oreferments — an evidence not only of the habits of the mcumbents, but of the tenaency of Church benefices to be- come hereditary. Yet more significantly the guilty bargains 148 lAfe. and Times of were forbidden by which benefices were let out to farm, and lay patrons presented incumbents on condition of shar- ing the offertory money ; wliile pluralist ecclesiastics, of whom Becket himself liad been a conspicuous instance, were ordered to give a third, at least, of their tithes to the vicars. At the close of the war, in 1175, a similar council was held at Westminster under the new primate. Not only the Avranches resolutions were adopted there, but indications appeared that among the English clergy simony and license were at a yet grosser point than on the Continent. Bene- fices had been publicly set up to sale. The religious houses received money for the admission of monks and nuns. Priests, and even bishops, had demanded fees for the adr ministration of the sacraments ; while as regarded manners and morals, it was evident that the priestly character sat lightly on the secular clergy. They carried arms ; they wore their hair long like laymen ; they frequented taverns and more questionable places ; the more reputable among them were sheriffs and magistrates. So far as decrees of a council could alter the inveterate habits of the order, a better state of things was attempted to be instituted. In the October following, Cardinal Hugezun came from Rome to arrange the vexed question of the liability of clerks to trial in the civil courts. The customs for which Henry pleaded seem at that time to been substantially recognized. Offenders were degraded by their ordinaries and passed over to the secular judges. For one particular class of offences definite statutory powers were conceded to the State. The clergy were notorious violators of the forest laws. Deer-stealing implied a readiness to commit other crimes, and Cardinal Hugezun formally consented that or- ders should be no protection in such cases. The betrayal of their interests on a matter which touched so nearly the occupation of their lives was received by the clergy with a scream of indignation. Their language on the occasion i^ an illustration of what may have been observed often, be Thomas JBecket. 149 fore and since, that no order of men are leas reapectiul to Bpiritual authority when they disapprove its decrees. *' The aforesaid cardinal," wrote Benedict and Walter of Coventry, " conceded to tlie king the right of impleading the clerks of his realm under the forest laws, and of punishing tl;em for taking deer. Limb of Satan that he was ! merce- nary satellite of the devil himself! Of a shepherd he was made a robber. Seeing the wolf coming, he fled away and left the sheep whom the supreme pontiff had committed to his charge." ' The angry advocates of ecclesiastical license might have spared their passion. The laws of any country cannot be nuiiutaiiied above the level of the average intelligence of the people ; and in another generation the clergy would be free to carry their cross-bows without danger of worse con- sequences than a broken crown from the staff of a game- keeper. " Archbishop Richard," says Giraldus, " basely surrendered the riglits which the martyr Thomas had fought for and won, but Archbishop Stephen recovered them." The blood of St. Thomas had not been shed, and the martyr of Canterbnry had not been allowed a monopoly of wonder- working, that a priest should be forbidden to help himself to a haunch of vension on festival days. In the great Charter of English freedom the liberties of the Church were comprehended in the form, or almost in the form, in which Becket himself would have defined them. The barons paid for the support of the clergy on that memorable occasion by the concession of their most extravagant demands. Ben- efit of clergy thenceforward was permitted to throw an en- chaniiHl shield, not lound deer-stealers only, bat round tiiieves and murderers, and finally round every villain that could read. The spiritual courts, under the name of liberty, were allowed to develop a system of tyranny and corrup- 1 " Ecce membriim Satana; ! free ips'us Salanse conductiis satelles ! qui ^m subito factus de pastore raptor viduns luptim veuJentem f ugit et diinisit >ves sibi a summo poDtiUce conimissas." 150 lAfe and Times of Thomas Becket. tion unparalleled in the administrative annals of any time or country. The English laity were for three centuries condemned to writhe under the yoke which their own cred- ulous folly had imposed on them, till the spirit of Henry the Second at length revived, and the aged iniquity was brought to judgment at the Beformation. THE OXFORD COUNTER-REFORMATION.* [GOOD WORDS. 1S81.] LETTER I. THE CHURCH OF ENGLAND FIFTY TEARS AGO. Mt dear . You remind me of a promise which I have left too long unfulfilled. We had been looking over some of your old family papers, and we had found among them a copy of the once famous Tract 90, scored over with pen- cil marks and interjections. The rocket which had flamed across the sky was now a burnt-out case. It was hard to believe that the whole mind of England could have been so agitated by expressions and ideas which had since become so familiar. We were made to feel how times had changed in the last forty years ; we had been travelling on a spiritual railroad, and the indifference with which we turned the leaves of the once terrible pamphlet was an evidence how far we had left behind our old traditionary landmarks. Mysteries which had been dismissed as superstitions at the Reformation, and had never since been heard of, were now preached again by half the clergy, and had revolutionized the ritual in our churches. Every county had its Anglican monasteries and convents. Romanism had lifted up its head again. It had its hierarchy and its cardinals ; it was a power 1 These letters were originally published before the appearance of Mr. Mozley's Reminiscences of the Oxford Movement. I have not found it nocessarv to make any alterations. 152 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. in Parliament, and in the London salons. The fathers con- fessors were busy in our families, dictating conditions of mar- riages, dividing wives from husbands, and children from parents. By the side of the revival of Catholicism there was a cor- responding phenomenon of an opposite and no less startling kind. Half a century ago any one who openly questioned the truth of Christianity was treated as a public offender and was excommunicated by society. Now, while one set of men were bringing back raediaavalism, science and criticism were assailing with impunity the authority of the Kible ; miracles were declared impossible; even Theism itself was treated as an open question., and subjects which in our fathers' time were approached only with the deepest reverence and solem- nity were discussed among the present generation with as much freedom as the common problems of natural philos- ophy or politics. Both tliese movements began within a short distance of one another, and were evidently connected. You asked me to write down what I could recollect about their oi-igin, having had, as you supposed, some special opportunities of knowing their history. I hesitated, partly because it is not aijreeable to go back over our own past mistakes, partly be- cause I have ceased to feel particular interest in either of them. For myself, I am convinced that they are roads both of them which lead to the wrong place, and that it is better for us to occupy ourselves with realities than fret our minds about illusions. If the Church of Rome recovers power enough to be dangerous, it will be shattered upon the same locks on which it was dashed three centuries ago. The Church of England may play at sacerdotalism and masque- rade in medJEBVal garniture ; the clergy may flatter one an- other with notions that they can bind and loose the souls of their fellow-Christians, and transform the substance of the sacramental elements by spells and gestures; but they will not at this time of day persuade intelligent men that the The Chureh of England Fifty Years Ago. 153 bishops in their ordination gave them Feally supernatural powers. Their celebrations and processions may amuse i'or a time by their novelty, but their pretensions deserve essentially no more respect than those of spirit-rappers, and the serious forces of the world go on upon their way no more affected by them than if they were shadows. As little is it possible to hope much from the school of negative and scientific criticism. For what science can tell U3 of positive truth in specia,! subjects we are infinitely thankful. In matters of religion it can say nothing, for it knows nothing. A surgeon may dissect a living body to discover what life consists in. The body is dead before he can reach the secret, and he can report only that tlie materi- als, when he has taken them to pieces and examined them, are merely dead matter. Critical philosophy is equally at a loss with Christianity. It may perhaps discover the doc- trines of the creed in previously existing Eastern theologies. It may pretend to prove that the sacred records were com- posed as human narratives are composed; that the origin of many of them cannot be traced; that they are defective in authority; that the evidence is insufficient to justify a belief in the events which they relate. So far as [iliilosophy can see, there may be nothing in the materials of Cliristian- ity which is necessarily and certainly supernatural. And yet Christianity exists, and has existed, and has been the roost powerful spiritual force which has ever been felt among mankind. If I tell the story which you ask of me, therefore, I must tell it without sympathy, either way, in these great movements. I cannot, like "the sow that was washed," return to wallow in repudiated superstition. If I am to be edified, on the other hand, I must know what is true in religion ; and I do not care about negations. In this re- spect I am unfit for the task which you impose on me. It is perhaps, however, occasionally well to take stock of our mental experience. The last forty or fifty years will be ,' / 154 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. memorable hereafter in the history of English opinion. The number of those who recollect the beginnings of the Oxford revival is shrinking fast ; and such of us as survive may usefully note down their personal recollections as a contribution, so far as it goes, to the general narrative. It is pleasant, too, to recall the figures of those who played the chief parts in the drama. If they had not been men of ability they could not have produced the revolution that was brought about by them. Their personal characters were singularly interesting. Two of them were distinctly men of real genius. My own brother was at starting the foremost of the party ; the flame, therefore, naturally burnt hot in my own immediate environment. The phrases and formulas of Anglo-Catholicism had become household words in our family before I understood coherently what the stir and tumult was about. We fancy that we are free agents. We are conscious of what we do ; we are not conscious of the causes which make us do it ; and therefore we imagine that the cause is in our- selves. The Oxford leaders believed that they were fight- ing against the spirit of thB'age. They Were themselves most completely the creatures of their age7 Tt was one of those periods when Conservative England had been seized with a passion for Eeform. Parliament was to be reformed; the municipal institutions were to be reformed ; there was to be an end of monopolies and privileges. The constitu- tion was to be cut in pieces and boiled in the Benthamite caldron, from which it was to emerge in immortal youth. In a reformed State there needed a reformed Church. My brother and his friends abhorred Bentham and all his works. The Establishment in its existing state was too weak to do battle with the new enemy. Protestantism was the chrysalis of Liberalisna. The Church, therefore, was to be unprotestantized. The Reformation, my brother said, was a bad setting of a broken limb. The limb needed breaking a second time, and then it would be equal to its business. TJie Church of England Fifty Years Ago. 155 My brother exaggerated the danger, and underestimated the strength which existing iustitutious and customs possess so long as they are left undisturbed. Before he and his friends undertook the process of reconstruction, the Chui-ch was perhaps in the healthiest condition which it had ever known. Of all the constituents of human society, an estab- lished religion is that which religious men themselves should most desire to be let alone, and which people in general when they are healthy-minded are most sensitive about al- lowing to be touched. It is the sanction of moral obliga- tion. It gives authority to the commandments, creates a fear of doing wrong, and a sense of responsibility for doing it. To raise a doubt about a creed established by general acceptance is a direct injury to the general welfare. Dis- cussion about it is out of place, for only bad men wish to question the rule of life which religion commands ; and a creed or ritual is not a series of propositions or a set of out- ward observances of which the truth or fitness may be prop- erly argued ; it grows with the life of a race or nation ; it takes shape as a living germ develops into an organic body ; and as you do not ask of a tree, is it true, but is it alive, so with an established Church or system of belief you look to , the work which it is doing. If it is teaching men to be brave and upright, and honest and just ; if it is making them noble-minded, careless of their selfish interests, and loving only what is good, the truth of it is proved by evidence better than argument, and idle persons may properly be prohibited from raising unprofitable questions about it. Where there is life, truth is present, not as in propositions, but as an active force, and that is all which practical men need desire. Thus in stern and serious ages, the religion of every coun- try has been under the charge of the law, and to deny it has been treated as a crime. When the law has become re- laxed, public opinion takes its place, and, though offenders are no longer punished, society excommunicates them. If 156 The Oxford Counter-Eeformation. religion were matter of speculation, they would be let alone ; but so long as it is a principle of conduct, the com- mon sense of mankind refuses to allow it to be trifled with. Public opinion was in this sense the guardian of Chris- tianity in England sixty years ago. Orthodox dissent was permitted. Doubts about the essentials of the faith were not permitted. In the last century, in certain circles of soci- ety, scepticism had for a time been fashionable ; but the number of professed unbelievers was never great, and infidel- ity was always a reproach. The Church administration had been slovenly ; but in the masses of the people the convic- tions which they had inherited were still present, and were blown into flame easily by the Methodist revival. The Establishment followed the example and grew energetic again. The French Revolution had frightened all classes out of advanced ways of thinking, and society in town and country was Tory in politics, and determined to allow no iimovations upon the inherited faith. It was orthodox without being theological. Doctrinal problems were little thought of. Religion, as taught in the Church of England, meant moral obedience to the will of God. The speculative part of it was accepted because it was assumed to be true. The creeds were reverentially repeated ; but the essential thing was practice. People went to church on Sunday to learn to be good, to hear the commandments repeated to them for the thousandth time, and to see them written in gilt letters over the communion-table. About the powers of the keys, the real presence or the metaphysics of doctrine, no one was anxious, for no one thought about them. It was not worth while to waste time over questions which had no bearing on conduct, and could be satisfactorily disposed of only by sensible indifference. As the laity were, so were the clergy. They were gen- erally of superior culture, manners, and chai-acter. The pastor in the " Excursion " is a favorable but not an ex- ceptional specimen of a large class among them. Others The Church of England Fifty Years Ago. 157 were country gentlemen of the best kind, continually in contact with the people, but associating on equal terms with the squires and the aristocracy. The curate of the last century, who dined in the servants' hall and married the ladies'-maid, had long disappeared, if he had ever existed outside popular novels. Not a specimen of him could have been found in the island. The average English incumbent of fifty years ago was a man of private fortune, the younger brother of the landlord perhaps, and holding the family living ; or it might be the landlord himself, his advowsoii being part of the estate. His professional duties wore his services on Sunday, funerals and weddings on week-days, and visits when needed among the sick. In other respeits he lived like his neighbors, distinguished from them only by a black coat and white neckcloth, and greater watchfulness over his words and actions. He farmed his own glebe ; he kept horses ; he shot and hunted moderately, and mixed in general society. He was generally a magistrate ; he attended public meetings, and his education enabled him to take a leading part in county business. His wife and daughtirs looked after tlie poor, taught in the Sunday-school, and managed the penny clubs and clothing clubs. He himself was spoken of in the parish as *' the master " — the person who was responsible for keeping order there, and wlio knew how to keep it. The laborers and the farmers looked up to him. The " family " in the great house could not look down upon him. If he was poor it was still his pride to bring up his sons as gentlemen ; and economies were cheer- fully submitted to at home to give them a start in life — at the university, or in the army or navy. Our own household was a fair representative of the order. My father was rector of the parish. He was archdeacon, he was justice of the peace. He had a moderate fortune of his own, consisting chiefly in land, and he belonged, there- fore, to the " landed interest." Most of the magistrates' work of the neighborhood passed through his hands. If 158 The Oxford Counter-Beformatwn. anything was amiss, it was his ailvice which was most sought after, and I remember his being called upon to lay a troublesome ghost. In his younger d:iys he had been a hard rider across country. His children knew him as a contin- ually busy, useful man of the world, a learned and culti- vated antiquary, and an accomplished artist. My brothers and I were excellently educated, and were sent to scliool and college. Our spiritual lessons did not go beyond the Catechism. We were told that our business in life was to work and to make an honorable position for ourselves. About doctrine, Evangelical or Catholic, I do not think tiiat in my early boyhood I ever heard a single word, in church or out. of it. The institution had drifted into the condition of what I should call moral health. It did not instruct us in mysteries, it did not teach us to make religion a special object of our thoughts ; it taught us to use religion as a light by which to see our way along the road of duty. Without the sun our eyes would be of no use to us ; but if we look at the sun we are simply dazzled, and can see neither it nor anything else. It is precisely the same with theolog- ical speculations. If the beacon lamp is shining, a man of healthy mind will not discuss the composition of the flame. Enough if it shows him how to steer and keep clear of shoals and breakers. To this conception of the thing we had practically arrived. Doctrinal controversies were sleep- ing. Peopli! went to church because they liked it, because they knew that they ought to go, and because it was the cu>tom. They had received the Creeds from their fathers, and doubts about them hatl never crossed their minds. Christianity had wrought itself into the constitution of their natures. It was a necessary part of the existing order of the universe, as little to be debated about as the movements of the planets or the changes of the seasons. Such the Church of England was in the country dis- tricts before the Tractarian movement. It was not perfect, but it was doing its work satisfactorily. It is easier to alter Ttue Church of England Fifty Years Ago. 159 than to improve, and the beginning of change, like the be- ginning of strife, is like the letting out of water. Jupiter, in Lessing's fable, was invited to mend a fault in human nature. The fault was not denied, but Jupiter said that man was a piece of complicated machinery, and if he touched a part he might probably spoil the whole. But a new era was upon us. The miraculous nineteenth century was coming of age, end all the world was to be re- made. Widely as the improvers of their species differed as to I lie methods to be followed, they agreed in this, that im- provement there was to be. The Kadicals wanted to m:ike an end of Toryism and antiquated ideas. Young Oxford discovered that if the Radicals were to be fouglit with suc- cessfully the old weapons would not answer, and soradthing was wanted "deeper and truer than satisfied the last cen- tury." Our English-speaking forefathers in the last cen- tury it seems were poor creatures, yet they had contrived to achieve considerable success in most departments of hu- man affairs. They founded empires; they invented steam- engines ; they produced a Ciiatham, a Clive, a Warren Hastings, a Washington, a Franklin, a Nelson — a longer list of illustrious names than there is need to mention. Their literature might not equal the Eliziibethaii, but it was noteworthy in its way. A period which had produced Pope and Swift, Sterne and Fielding, Johnson and Gold- smith, Hume and Gibbon, Butler and Berkeley, was not so entirely shallow. Men had fixed beliefs in those days. Over the pool of uncertainties in which oiir own generation is floundering there was then a crust of undisturbed convic- tion on which they could plant their feet and step out like men. Their thoughts, if not deep, were clear and precise ; their actions were bold and strong. A good many years, perhaps a good many hundreds of years, will have to pass before as sound books will be written again, or deeds done with as much pith and mettle in them. " The something deeper and truer " would be more easily desired than found. 160 The Oxford Counter-Beforniation. but the words well convey the inflation with which the Catholic revivalists were going to their work. Our age perhaps has a mistaken idea of its consequence. All its geese are swans, and every new enemy is a monster never before heard of. The " Edinburgh Review " and Brough- am, and Mackintosh and the Reform Ministry, and Low Church philosophy and the London University were not so very terrible. But as the windmills were giants to the knight of La Mancha, so the Whigs of those days were to young Oxford apostles the forerunners of Antichrist. In- fidelity was rushing in upon us. Achilles must rise from his tent, and put on his celestial armor. The Church must reassert herself in majesty to smite and drive back the proud agp;ressive intellect. The excitement was unnecessary. The sun was not ex- tinguished because a cloud was over its lace. Custom, tra- dition, conservative instinct, and natural reverence for the trutli handed down to it, would have sufficed more than amply to meet such danger as then existed. In a little while "The Edinburgh" became the most orthodox of jour- nals, and Brougham an innocent apostle of natural theology. Liberalism let well alone would have subsided into its place. But it was not so to be. Achilles was roused in his wrath ; and the foe whom he was to destroy was i-oused in turn, and has not been destroyed. The two parties were the counterparts one of the other ; eacli was possessed with the same conceit of superiority to tlieir fathers and grand- fathers ; each in its way supposed that it had a mission to reconstruct society. The Radicals believed in the riglits of man, the progress of the species, and intellectual eman- cipation. To them our ancestors were children, and the last-born generation were the ancient sages, for they had inherited the accumulated experience of all past time. Es- tablished institutions represented only ignorance. The older they were, the less fitted they were, from the nature of the case, for modern exigencies. The Church of England Fifty Years Ago. 161 In talk of this kind there was one part sense and nine parts nonsense. Tlie Oxford School confronted it with a position equally extravagant. In their opinion truth was to be found only in the earliest fathers of the Church ; the nearer that we could reach back to them, the purer we should find the stream. The bottom of the mischief was the modern notion of liberty, the supposed right of men to think for themselves and act for themselves. Their business was to submit to authority, and the seat of authority was the Church. The false idea had made its appearance in England first under the Plantagenet kings, in the Constitu- tions of Clarendon, the mortmain and premunire statutes. It had produced the Reformation, it had pi'oduced Puritan- ism and regicide. It now threatened the destruction of all that good men ought to value. The last century had been blind ; our own fathers had been blind ; but the terrible reality could no longer be concealed. The arch enemy was at the door. The Test Act was repealed. Civil disabilities were taken off Dissenters. Brougham had announced tliat ?icnceforth no man was to suffer for his religious opinions. Irish bishoprics were being suppressed. Lord Grey had warned the bishops in England to set their houses in order, and was said to have declared in private that the Chiircli was a mare's nest. Catholic emancipation was equally mon- strous. Romanists, according to the theory as it then stood, might be Churchmen abroad, but they were Dissenters in England and Ireland. War was to be declared at once, war to the knife against the promoters of these enormities. History was reconstructed for us. I had learnt, like otlier Protestant children, that the pope was Antichrist, and that Gregory VII. had been a special revelation of that beinfr- I was now taught that Gregory VII. was a saint. I had been told to honor the Reformers. The Refoimation became the great schism, Cranmer a traitor, and Latimer a vulgar ranter. Itlilton was a name of horror, and Charles I. was canonized and spoken of as the holy and blessed martyr St. 162 The, Oxford Counter-Reformation. Charles. I asked once whether the Chui-ch of England was able properly to create a saint. St. Charles was immedi- ately pointed out to me. Similarly we were to admire the non-jurors, to speak of James III. instead of the Pretender ; to look for Antichrist, not in the pope, but in Whigs and revolutionists and all their works. Henry of Exeter, so famous in those days, announced once in my hearing that the Court of Rome had regretted the Emancipation Act as a victory of latitudinarianism. I suppose he believed what he was saying. Under tiie sad conditions of the modern world the Church of England was the rock of salvation. The Church, needing only to be purged of the elements of Protestantism which had stolen into her, could then, with her apostolic succes- sion, her bishops, her priests, and her sacraments, rise up, and claim and exercise her lawful authority over all persons in all departments. She would have but to show herself in her proper majesty, as in the great days when she fought with kings and emperors, and now, as then, the powers of darkness would spread their wings and fly away to tiieir own place. These were the views which we used to hear in our home- circle when the Tracts were first beginning. We had been bred, all of us, Tories of the old school. This was Toryism in ecclesiastical costume. My brother was younu;, gifted, brilliant, and enthusiastic. No man is ever good for much who has not been carried off his feet by enthusiasm between twenty and thirty ; but it needs to be bridled and bitted, and my brother did not live to be taught the differenct: between fact and speculation. Taught it he would have been, i£ time had been allowed him. No one ever recognized facts more loyally than he when once he saw tliem. This I am sure of, that when the intri^-acies of the situation pressed upon him, when it became clear to him that if his concep- tion of the Church, and of its rights and position was true at all, it was not true of the Church of England ia which 411 The Church of England Fifty Years Ago, 163 he was born, and that he must renounce his theory as vis- ionary or join another communion, he would not have " min- imized " the Roman doctrines that they might be more easy for him to swallow, or have explained away plain proposi- tions till they meant anything or nothing. Whether he would have swallowed them or not I cannot say ; I was not eighteen when he died, and I do not so much as form an opinion about it ; but his course, whatever it was, would have been direct and straightforward ; he was a man far more than a theologian ; and if he liad gone, he would have gone with his whole heart and conscience, unassisted by sub- tleties and nice distinctions. It is, however, at least equally possible that he would not have gone at all. He might have continued to believe that all authority was derived from God ; that God would have His will obeyed in this world, and that the business of princes and ministers was to learn what that will was. But prophets have pass^ed for something as well as priests in making God's will known ; and Established Church priesthoods have not been gener- ally on particularly good terms with prophets- The only occasion on which the two orders are said to have been in harmony was when the prophets prophesied lies, and the priests bore rule in their name. The terminus, however, towards which he and his friends were moving had not come in sight in my brother's life- time. He went forward, hesitating at nothing, taking the fences as they came, passing lightly over them all, and sweep- ing his friends along with him. He iiad the contempt of an intellectual aristocrat for private judgment and the rights of a man. In common things a peraon was a fool who pre- ferred his own judgment to that of an expert. Why, he asked, should it be wiser to follow private judgment in re- ligion? As to rights, the right of wisdom was to rule, and the right of ignorance was to be ruled. But he belonged himself to the class whose business was to order rather than obey. If his own bishop had interfered with him, 164 The Oxford Counter-Beformation. his theory of episcopal authority would have been found inapplicable in that particular instance. So the work went on. The Church was not to be a wit- ness only to religious truth ; it was first to repent of its sins, disown its Protestantism, and expel the Calvanistic poison ; then it was to control politics and govern all opinion. Mur- murs arose from time to time among the disciples. If the Reformation was to be called an act of schism, were we not on the road back to Rome? Shrewd observers were heard to say that the laity would never allow the Church of Eng- land to get on stilts. The Church was grafted on upon the State, and the State would remain master, let Oxford say what it pleased. But the party of the movement were to grow and fulfil their destiny. They were to produce results of in- calculable consequence, yet results exactly opposite to what they designed and anticipated. They were to tear up the fibres of custom by which the Establishment as they found it was maintaining its quiet influence. They were to raise discussions round its doctrines, which degraded accepted truths into debatable opinions. They were to alienate the conservative instincts of the country, fill the clerijy once more with the conceit of a priesthood, and convert them into pilot fish for the Roman missionaries. Worst of all, by their attempts to identify Christianity with the Catholic system, they provoked doubts, in those whom they failed to persuade, about Christianity itself. But for the Oxford movement, scepticism might have continued a harmless spec- ulation of a few philosophers. By their perverse alterna- tive, either the Church or nothing, they forced honest men to say. Let it be nothing, then, rather than what we know to be a lie. A vague misgiving now saturates our popular literature ; our lecture rooms and pulpits echo with it ; and the Established religion, protected no longer from irrever- ent questions, is driven to battle for its existence among the common subjects of secular investigation. Truth will pre- The Church of England Fifty Years Ago. 165 vail in the end, and the trial, perhaps, must have come at one time or other. But it need not have come when it did. There might have been peace in our days, if Achilles had remained in his tent. You shall have the story of it all in the following letters. 166 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. LETTER II. THE TRACTAKIANS. My dear . I have told you that the Tractarians' object, so far as they understood themselves, was to raise up the Church to resist the revolutionary tendency which they conceived to have set in with the Reform Bill ; that the effect of their work was to break the back of the resist- ing power which the Church already possessed, and to feed the fire which they hoped to extinguish. I go on to explain in detail what I mean. When I went into residence at Oxford my brother was no longer alive. He had been abroad almost entirely for three or four years before his death ; and although the at- mosphere at home was full of the new opinions, and I heard startling things from time to time on Trausubstantiation and suchlike, he had little to do with my direct education. I had read at my own discretion in my father's library. My own small judgment had been satisfied by Newton that the Pope was the Man of Sin ; and Davison, to whom I was sent for a correction, had not removed the impression. I knew the " Fairy Queen " pretty well, and had understood who and what was meant by the False Duessa. I read Sharon Turner carefully, and also Gibbon, and had thus unconsciously been swallowing antidotes to Catholic doc- trine. Of evangelical books properly so called I had seen nothing. Dissent in all its forms was a crime in our house. My father was too solid a man to be carried off his feet by the Oxford enthusiasm, but he was a High Churchman of the old school. The Church itself he regarded as part of The Tractarians. 167 tlie constitution ; and the Prayer-book as au Act of Parlia- ment which only folly or disloyalty could quarrel with. My brother's notion of the evangelical clergy in tlie Estab- lishment must have been taken from some uiiturtunate specimens. He used to speak of them as " fellows who turned up the whites of their eyes, and said Lawd." We had no copy of the " Pilgrim's Progress " in the house. I never read it till after I had grown up, and I am sorry that I did not make earlier acquaintance with it. Specula- tions about the Church and the sacraments went into my head, but never much into my heart ; and I fancy, perhaps idly, tiiat I might have escaped some trials and some mis- fortunes if my spiritual imagination had been allowed food which would have agreed with it. In my first term at the university, the controveroial fires were beginning to blaze, but not as yet hotly. The author- ities had not taken the alarm, but there was much talk and excitement, and neither the education nor the discipline of the place was benefited by it. The attention of the heads and tutors was called off from their pi'oper business. The serious undergraduates divided into parties, and the measure with which they estimated one another's abilities was not knowledge or industry, but the opinions which they severally held. The neo-Catholic youths thought themselves espe- cially clever, and regarded Low Churchmen and Liberals as fools. It was unfortunate, for the state of Oxford was cry- ing out for reform of a different kind. The scheme of teaching for the higher class of men was essentially good, perhaps as good as it could he made; incomparably better than the universal knowledge methods which have taken its place. But the idle or dull man had no education at all. His three or four years were spent in forgetting what he had learnt at school. The degree examination was got over by a memoria technica, and three months' cram with a private tutor. We did pretty much what we liked. There was much dissipation, and the whole manner of life was need- 168 The Oxford Counter-Beformation. lessly extravagant. We were turned loose at eighteen, pleasures tempting us on all sides, the expense of indulgence being the only obstacle ; and the expense for the first year or two was kept out of sight by the eagerness of the trades- men to give us credit. No deau or tutor ever volunteered to help our inexperience. The prices which we paid for everything were preposterous. The cost of living might have been reduced to half what it was if the college authori- ties would have supplied the students on the co-operative system. But they would take no trouble, and their own charges were on the same extravagant scale. The wretched novice was an object of general plunder till he had learnt how to take care of himself. I remember calculating that I could have lived at a boarding-house on contract, with every luxury wliich I had in college, at a reduction of fifty per cent. In all tliis there was room and to spare for reforming energy, and it may be said that the administration (if the university was the immediate business of the leading mem- bers — a business, indeed a duty, much more immediate than the utiprotestantizing of the Church of England. But there was no leisure, there was not even a visible desii-e to meddle with concerns so vulgar. Famous as the Tractarian leaders were to become, their names are not connected with a single efTort to improve the teaching at Oxford or to rm-nd ^ts manners. Behind the larger conflict which they raised, that duty was left untouched for many years ; it was taken up ultimately by the despised Liberals, who have not done it well, but have at least accomplished something, and have won the credit which was left imprudently within their reach. The state of things which I found on coming up was, thus, not favorable to the proper work of the place. In general there was far too little intercourse between the elder and the younger men. The difference of age was not really very great, but they seldom met, except in lecture- rooms. If an undergraduate now and then breakfasted The Tractarians. 169 with his tutor, the undergraduate was shy, and the tutor was obliged to maintain by distance and dignity of manner the superiority which he might have forfeited if he allowed himself to be easy and natural. I myself, for my bi-other's sake, was iu some degree an exception. I saw sometbiug from the first of the men of whom the world was talking. I might have seen more, but I did not make the most of my opportunities. I wished to be a disciple. I thought I was a disciple. But somehow I could never feel in my heart that what they were about was of the importance of which it seemed to be, and I was little more than a curious and interested spectator. Nor, with two exceptions, were the chiefs of the move- ment personally impressive to me. Isaac Williams I had known as a boy. He was an early friend of my brother's, and spent a vacation or two at my father's house before I went to school. His black brilliaut eyes, his genial laugh, the skill and heartiness with which he threw himself into our childish amusements, the inexhaustible stock of stories with which he held us spell-bound for hours, had endeared him to every one of us ; and at Oxford to dine now and then with four or five others in Williams's rooms was still one of the greatest pleasures which I had. He was serious, but never painfully so ; and though his thoughts ran almost en- tirely iu theological channels, they rose out of the soil of his own mind, pure and sparkling as the water from a mountain spring. He was a poet, too, and now and then could rise into airy sweeps of really high imagination. There is an image in the " Baptistery " describing the relations tetween the actions of men here in this world and the eternity which lies before them, grander than the finest of Keble's, or even of Wordsworth's : — lee-chained in its headlong tract Have I seen a cataract, All tliroughout a wintry noon, Hanging io the talent moon ; 170 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. All throughout a sunbright even, Like the sapphire gate of Heaven ; Spray and wave, and drippings frore. For a hundred feet and more Caught in air, there to remain Bound in winter's crystal cliain. All above still silent sleeps, While in the transparent deeps, Far below the current creeps. Thus, methought men's actions here, In their headlong full career. Were passing into adamant ; Hopes and fears, love, hate, and want, And the thoughts, like shining spray. Which above their pathway play. Standing in the eye of day, In the changeless heavenly noon, Things done here beneath the moon. Fault may be found with the execution in this passage, but the conception is poetry of the very highest order. But Williams was of quiet, unobtrusive spirit. He had neither the confidence nor the commanding nature which could have formed or led a party. The triumvirs who became a national force, and gave its real character to the Oxford movement, were Keble, Pusey, and John Henry Newman. Newman himself was the moving power; the two others were powers also, but of inferior mental strength. Without the third, they would have been known as men of genius and learning ; but their personal influence would have been limited to and have ended with themselves. Of Pusey I knew but little, and need not do more than mention him. Of Keble I can only venture to say a few words. He had left residence at the lime I speak of, but the " Christian Year " had made him famous. He was often in Oxford as Professor of Poetry, and I was allowed to see him. Cardinal Newman has alluded in his " Apologia " to the reverence which was felt for Keble. He is now an The Tractarians. Ill acknowledged Saint of the English Churcli, admired and respected oven by those who disagree with his theology. A college has been fuunded in commemoration of him which bears his name ; and the " Christian Year " itself has passed through more than a hundred editions, and is a household word in every family of the Anglican Episcopal communion, both at home and in America. It seems presumptuous to raise a doubt about the fitness of a recognition so marked and so universal. But the question is not of Keble's piety or genuineness of character. Both are established beyond the reach of cavil, and it would be absurd and ungracious to depreciate them. The intellectual and literary quality of his work, however, is a fair subjei-t of criticism ; and I am htretical enough to believe that, altiiough tiie " Christian Year " will always hold a high place in religious poetry, it owes its extraordinary popularity to temporai-y and accidcntid causes. Books which are immediately successful, are thnse which catch and reflect the passing tones of opinion — all- absorbing while they last, but from their nature subject lo change. The mass of men know little of other times or other ways of thinking than their own. Their minds aio formed by the conditions of the present hour. Their great- est man is he who for the moment expresses most completely their own sentiments, and represents human life to them from their own point of view. The point of view shifts, conditions alter, fashions succeed fashions, and opinions opinions ; and having ourselves lost the clue, we read the writings which delighted our great-grandfathers with won- der at their taste. Each generation produces its own proph- ets, and great contemporary fame, except in a few extraor- dinary instances, is revenged by an undeserved completeness of neglect. Very different in general is the reception of the works of true genius. A few persons appreciate them from the first. To the many they seem flavorless and colorless, deficient in all the qualities which for the moment are most admired. 172 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. They pass unnoticed amidst the meteors by which they are surrounded and eclipsed. But the meteors pass and they remain, and are seen gradually to be no vanishing coruscations, but new fixed stars, sources of genuine light, shining serenely forever in the intellectual sky. They link the ages one to another in a common humanity. Vii-gil and Horace lived nearly two thousand years ago, and belonged to a society of which the outward form and fashion have utterly perished. But Virgil and Horace do not grow old, because while society changes men continue, and we recognize in read- ing them tliat the same heart beat under the toga which we feel in our own breasts. In the Roman Empire, too, there were contemporary popularities ; men who were wor- shipped as gods, whose lightest word was treasured as a pre- cious jewel — on whose breath millions hung expectant, who had temples built in their honor, who in their day were a power in the world. These are gone, while Horace remains, — gone, dwintUed into shadows. They were men, perhaps, of real worth, though of less than their admirers supposed, and they are now laughed at and moralized over in history as detected idols. As it was tlien, so it is now, and always will be. More copies of " Pickwick " were sold in five years than of " Hamlet" in two hundred. Yet '' Hamlet" will last as long as the " Iliad ; " " Pickwick," delightful as it is to us, will be unreadable to our great-grandchildren. The most genial caricature ceases to interest when the thing caricatured has ceased to be. I am not comparing the " Christian Year " to Pickwick, but there are fashions in religion as there are fashions in other things. The Puritans would have found in it the savor of the mystic Babylon. We cannot tell what Eng- lish thought will be on these subjects in another century, but we may know if we are modest that it will not be identical with ours. Keble has made himself a name in history which will not be forgotten, and he will be remem- bered always as a person of singular piety, of inflexible Th6 Tradarians. 173 integrity, and entire indifference to what is called fame or worldly advantages. He possessed besides, in an exceptional degree, the gift of expressing himself in the musical form which is called poetical. It is a form into which human thought naturally throws itself when it becomes emotional. It is the only form adequate to the expression of high intel- lectual passions. However powerful the intellect, however generous the heart, this particular faculty can alone convey to others what is passing in them, or give to spiritual beauty a body which is beautiful also. The poetic faculty thus secures to those who iiave it the admiration of every person ; but it is to be remembered also that if the highest things can alone be fitly spoken of in poetry, all poetry is not neces- sarily of the highest things ; and if it can rise tp the gr-and- est subjects, it can lend its beauty also to the most common- place. The prima donna wields the spell of an enchantrefs, though the words wbich she utters are nonsense ; and poetry can make diamonds out of glass, and gold out of oidinary metal. Keble was a representative of the devout mind of England. Religion, as he grew to manhood, was becorajjig self-conscious. It was passing out of its normal and healthy condition as the authoritative teacher of obedience to the commandments, into active anxiety about the speculative docti-ines on which its graces were held to depend. Here, as in all other directions, the mental activity of the age was making itself felt. The evangelical movement was one symptom of it. The revival of sacramentalism was another, and found a voice in Keble. But this is all. We look in vain to him for any insight into the complicated |>robleras of humanity, or for any sympathy with the passions which are the pulses of human life. With the Prayer-book for his guide, he has provided us with a manual of religious senti- ment corresponding to the Christian theoi'y as taught by the Church of England Prayer-book, beautifully expressed in language which every one can understand and remember. High Churchmanship had been hitherto dry and formal ; 174 The Oxford Counter-Bef&rmation. Keble carried into it the emotions of Evangelicalism, while he avoided angry collision with Evangelical opinions. Thus all parties could find much to admire in him, and little to suspect. English religious poetry was generally weak — was not, indeed, poetry at all. Here was something which in its kind was excellent ; and every one who was really re- ligious, or wished to be religious, or even outwardly and from habit professed himself and believed himself to be a Christian, found Keble's verses chime in his heart lilie chuich bells. The " Christian Year," however, could be all tliis, and yet notwithstanding it could be poetry of a particular period, and not for all time. Human nature remains the same ; but religion alters. Christianity has taken many forms. la the early Church it had the hues of a hundred heresies. It developed in the successive councils. It has been Roman, it has been Greek, it has been Anglican, Lutheran, Calvin- ist, Arminian. It has adjusted itself to national chiiracter- istics ; it has grown with the growth of general knowledge. Keble himself, in his latest edition, is found keeping pace with the progress of the times, and announcins; tliat I ho hand as well as the heart receives the mystic presence in the Eucharist. He began to write for Churcli people as they were sixty years ago. The Church of England has travelled far since 1820. The " Highest" rector then alive would have gone into convulsions if his curate had spoken to him about " celebrating " mass. The most advanced Biblical critic would have closed the Speaker's Commentai-y with dismay or indignation. Changed opinions will bring change of feelings, and fresh poets to set the feelings to music. The " Christian Year " has reigned without a rival through two generations, but " tiie rhymes " are not of the powerful sort which will " outlive the Pyramids," and the qualities which have given them their immediate influence will equally forbid their immortality. The limitations of Keble's poetry were visible in a still higher degree in himself. He was not far-seeing ; his mind The Tradarians. 175 moved in the groove of a single order of ideas. He could not place himself in the position of persons who disagreed with him, and. thus he could never see the strong points of their arguments. Particular ways of thinking he dismit-sed as wicked, although in his summary condemnation he might be striking some of the ablest and most honest men in Eu- rope. If he had not been Keble he would have been called (treason though it be to write the words) narrow-minded. Circumstances independent of himself could alone have raised him into a leader of a party. For the more deli- cate functions of such au office he was constitutionally unfit, and when appealed to for advice and assistance by disciples who were in difficulties his answers were beside the purpose. He could not give to others what he did not himself possess. Plato, in the Dialogue of the lo, describes an ingenious young Athenian searching desperately for some one who would teach him to be wise. Failing elsewhere, he goes to the poets. Those, he thougiit, who could say such fine things in their verses would be able to tell him in prose what wisdom consisted in. Their conversation unfortu- nately proved as profitless as that of the philosophers ; and the youth concluded that the poetry came from divine in- spiration, and that when off the sacred tripod they were but common men. Disappoiutment could not chill the admira- tion which the inquirer would continue to feel for so ven- erable a teacher as Keble, but of practical light that would be useful to him he often gathered as little as the Athenian. Even as a poet Keble was subjective only. He had no variety of note, and nothing which was not in harmony with his own theological school had intellectual interest for him. To his immediate friends he was genial, affectionate, and possibly instructive, but he had no faculty for winning the unconverted. If he was not bigoted he was intensely preju- diced. If you did not agree with him there was something morally wrong with you, and your " natural man " was pro- 176 The Oxford Counter-Eeformation. Voked into resistance. To speak habitually with authority does not necessarily indicate an absence of humility, but does not encourage the growth of that quality. If there had been no " movement," as it was called, it' Keble had remained a quiet country clergyman, unconscious that he was a great mau, and uncalled on to guide the opinions of bis age, he would have commanded perhaps more enduring admiration. The knot of followers who specially attached themselves to him show traces of his influence in a dispo- sition not only to think the views which they hold sound in themselves, but to regard those who think differently as their intellectual inferiors. Keble was incapable of vanity in the vulgar sense. But there was a subtle self-sufficiency in him which has come out more distinctly in his school. I remember an instance of Keble's narrowness extremely chanicteristic of him. A member of a family with which he had been intimate had adopted Liberal opinions in theology. Keble probably did not know what those opinions were, but regarded this person as an apostate who had sinned against light. He came to call one day when the erring brother happened to be at home ; and learning that he was in the house, he i-efused to enter, and remained sitting in the porch. St. John is reported to have fled out of a bath at Ephesus on hearing that the heretic Cerintlms was under the roof.' Keble, I presume, remembered the story, and acted like the apostle. Tlie inability to appreciate the force of arguments which he did not like saved him from Rome, but did not save him from Roman doctrine. It would, perhaps, have been better if he had left the Church of England, instead of remaining there to shelter behind his high authority a revolution in its teaching. The mass has crept back among us, with which we thought we had done forever, and the honorable name of Protestant, once our proudest distinction, has been made over to the Church of Scotland and the Dissenters. Far different from Keble, from my brother, from Dr. The Tractarians. VJl Pusey, from all the rest, was the true chief of the Catholic revival — John Henry Newman. Compared with him, they were all but as ciphers, and he the indicating number. Tlie times I speak of are far distant ; the actors and the stormy passions which bubbled round them are long dead and for- gotten among new excitements. Newman, too, for many years had dropped silent, and disappeared from the world's eyes. He came out again in a conflict with a dear friend of mine, who, on my account partly (at least, in reviewing a book which I had written), provoked a contest with him, and impar congresses Achilli seemed to have been foiled. Charles Kingsley is gone from us. English readers know now what he was, and from me or from any one he needs no further panegyric. In that one instance he conducted liis case unskilfully. He was wrong in his estimate of the character of his antagonist, whose integrity was as unblem- ished as his own. But the last word has still to be spoken on the essential question which was at issue between them. The immediate result was tlie publication of the famous "Apologia," a defence personally of Newman's own life and actions, and next of the Catliolic cause. The writer of it is again a power in modern society, a prince of the Church ; surrounded, if he appears in public, with adoring crowds, fine ladies going on their knees before him in London salons. Himself of most modest nature, he never sought greatness, but greatness found him in spite of himself. To liim, if lo any one man, the world owes the intellectual recovery of Ro- manism. Fifty years ago it was in England a dying creed, lingering in retirement in the halls and chapels of a few half- forgotten families. A shy Oxford student has come out on its behalf into the field of controversy, armed with the keenest weapons of modern learning and philosophy ; and wins illustrious converts, and has kindled hopes that Eng- land herself, the England of Elizabeth and Cromwell, will kneel for absolution again before the father of Christendom. Mr. Buckle questioned whether any great work has ever 12 178 The Oxford Gounter-Beformation. been done in this world by an individual man. Newman, by the solitary force of his own mind, has produced this ex- traordinary change. What he has done we all see; what will come of it our children will see. Of the magnitude of the phenomenon itself no reasonable person can doubt. Two writers have affected powerfully the present genera- tion of Englishmen. Newman is one, Thomas CarlyJe is the other. But Carlyle has been at issue with all the tendencies of his age. Like a John the Baptist, he has stood alone preaching repentance in a world which is to him a wilderness. Newman has been the voice of the intel- lectual reaction of Europe, which was alarmed by an era of revolutions, and is looking for safety in the forsaken beliefs of the ages which it had been tempted to despise. The " Apologia " is the most beautiful of autobiographies, but it tells us only how the writer appeared to himself. We who were his contemporaries can alone say how he appeared to us in the old days at Oxford. John Henry Newman. 179 LETTER ni. JOHN HENRY NEWMAN. Mt dear . My present letter will be given to a single figure. When I entered at Oxford, Jolin Henry Newman was beginning to be famous. The responsible authorities were watching him with anxiety ; clever men were looking with interest and curiosity on the apparition araoug them of one of those persons of indisputable genius who was likely to make a mark upon his time. His appear- ance was striiting. He was above the middle height, slight and spare. His head was large, his face remarkably like that of Julius Caesar. The forehead, the shape of the ears and nose, were almost the same. The lines of the mouth were very peculiar, and I should say exactly the same. I have often thought of the resemblance, and believed that it extended to the temperament. In both there was an original force of character which refused to be moulded by circumstances, which was to make its own way, and become a power in the world; a clearness of intellectual perceptioTi, a disdain for conventionalities, a temper imperious and wil- ful, but along with it a most attaching gentleness, sweetness, singleness of heart and purpose. Both were foi'med by nature to command others ; both had the faculty of attract- ing to themselves the passionate devotion of their friends and followers ; and in both cases, too, pei'haps the devotion was rather due to the personal ascendency of the leader than to the cause which he represented. It was CiBsar, not the principle of the empire, which overthrew Pompey and the constitution. Gredo in Newmannum was a common 180 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. phrase at Oxford, and is still unconsciously the faith of nine- tenths of the English converts to Rome. When I first saw liim he had written his book upon the Arians. An accidental application had set him upon it, at a time, I believe, when he had half resolved to give himself to science and mathematics, and had so determined him into a theological career. He had published a volume or two of parochial sermons. A few short poems of his had also ap- peared in the " British Magazine," under the signature of " Delta," which were reprinted in the " Lyra Apostolica." They were unlike any other religious poetry which was then extant. It was hard to say why they were so fascinating. They had none of the musical grace of the " Christian Year." They were not harmonious ; the metre halted, the rhymes were irregular, yet there was sometiiing in them which seized the attention, and would not let it go. Keble's verses flowed in soft cadence over the mind, delightful, as sweet sounds are delightful, but are forgotten as the vibrations die away. New- man's had pierced into the heart and mind, and there re- mained. The literary critics of the day were puzzled. They saw that he was not an ordinary man ; what sort of an ex- traordinary man he was they could not tell. " The eye of Melpomene has been cast upon him," said the omniscient (I think) "Athenaeum";* "but the glance was not fixed or steady." The eye of Melpomene had extremely little to do in the matter. Here were thoughts like no other man's thoughts, and emotions like no other man's emotions. Here was a man who really believed his creed, and let it follow him into all his observations upon outward things. He had been travelling in Greece ; he had carried with him his recollections of Thucydides, and while his companions were sketching olive gardens and old castles and picturesque har- bors at Corfu, Newman was recalling the scenes which those 1 Perhaps it was not the AthemBum. I quote from memory. I remem- ber the passage from the amusement which it gave me; but it was between forty and fifty years ago, and I have never seen it since. John Henry Newman. 181 harbors had witnessed thousands of years ago in the civil wars which the Greek historian has made immortal. There was nothing in this that was unusual. Any one with a well- stored memory is affected by historical scenery. But New- man was oppressed with the sense that the men who had fallen in that desperate strife were still alive, as much as he and his friends were alive. Their spirits live ia awful singleness, he says, Each in its self-formed sphere of light or gloom. We should all, perhaps, have acknowledged this in words. It is happy for us that we do not all realize what tiie words mean. The minds of most of us would break under the strain. Other conventional beliefs, too, were quickened into start- ling realities. We had been hearing much in those days about the benevolence of the Supreme Being, and our cor- responding obligation to charity and philanthropy. If the received creed was trne, benevolence was by no means the only characteristic of that Being. What God loved we might love ; but there were things which God did not love ; accordingly, we found Newman saying to us, — Christian, would' st thou learn to love ? First learn thee how to hate. Hatred of sin and zeal and fear Lead up the Holy Hill ; Track them, till chaiity appear A self-denial still. It was not austerity that made him speak so. No one was more essentially tender-hearted. But he took the usually accepted Christian account of man and his destiny to be literally true, and the terrible character of it weighed upon him. Sunt lacrymse rerum et mentera mortalia tangunt. 182 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. He could be gentle enough in other moods. " Lead, kindly Light," is the most popular hymn in the language. All of us, Catholic, Protestant, or such as can see their way to no positive creed at all, can here meet on common ground and join in a common prayer. Familiar as the lines are, they may here be written down once more : — Lead, kindly Light, amid tlie encircliug gloom Lead Thou me on. The night is dark, and I am far from home. Lead Thou me on. Keep Thou my feet ; I do not ask to see Far distant scenes — one step enough for me. I was not ever thus, nor prayed that Thou Should'st lead me on. I loved to choose and see my path ; hut now Lead Thou me on. I loved the garish day, and, spite of fears, Pride ruled my will. Eememher not past years. So long Thy power hath blest us, sure it will Still lead us on. O'er moor and fen, o'er crag and torrent, till The night is gone. And with the mom those angel faces smile Which 1 have loved long since, and lost awhile. It has been said that men of letters are either much less or much greater than their writings. Cleverness and the skilful use of other people's thoughts produce works which take us in till we see the authors, and then we are disen- chanted. A man of genius, on the other hand, is a spring in which there is always more behind than flows from it. The painting or the poem is but a part of him inadequately realized, and his nature expresses itself, with equal or fuller completeness", in his life, his conversation, and personal pres- ence. This was eminently true of Newman. Greatly as his poetry had struck me, he was himself all that the poetry was, and something far beyond. I had then never seen so John Henry Newman. 183 impressive a person, I met him now and then in private ; I attended his church and heard him preach Sunday after Sunday ; he is supposed to have been insidious, to have led his disciples on to conclusions to which he designed to bring them, while his purpose was carefully veiled. He was, on the contrary, the most transparent of men. He told us what he believed to be true. He did not know where it would carry him. No one who has ever risen to any great height in this world refuses to move till he knows where he is going. He is impelled in each step which he takes by a force within himself. He satisfies himself only that the step is a right one, and he leaves the rest to Providence. New- man's mind was world-wide. He was interested in every- thing which was going on in science, in politics, in literature. Nothing was too large for him, nothing too trivial, if it threw light upon the central question, what man really was, and what was his destiny. He was careless about his personal prospects. He had no ambition to make » eareer, or to lise to rank and power. Still less had pleasure any seductions for him. His natural temperament was bright and liglit ; his senses, even tiie commonest, were exceptionally delicate. I was told that, though he rarely drank wine, he was trusted to choose the vintages for the college cellar. He could admire enthusiastically any greatness of action and charac- ter, however remote the sphere of it from his own. Gur- wood's " Dispatches of the Duke of Wellington " came out just then. Newman had been reading the book, and a friend asked him what he thought of it. "Think?" he said, "it m^kes one burn to have been a soldier." But his own subject was the absorbing interest with him. Where Christianity is a real belief, where there are distinct convictions tiiat a man's own self and the millions of human beings who are playing on the earth's sui'face are the objects of a supernat- ural dispensation, and are on the road to heaven or hell, the most powerful mind may well be startled at the aspect of things. If Christianity was true, since Christianity was true 184 The Oxford Counter-Beformation. (for Newman at no time doubted the reality of the revela- tion), then modern England, modern Europe, witli its march of intellect and its useful knowledge and its material piog- ress, was advancing with a light heart into ominous condi- tions. Keble had looked into no lines of thought but his own. Newman had read oranivorously ; he had studied modern thought and modern life in all its formes, and with all its many-colored passions. He knew, of course, that many men of learning and ability believed that Christianity was not a revelation at all, but had been thrown out, like other creeds, in the growth of tlie human miud. He knew that doubts of this kind were the inevitable results of free discussion and free toleration of diiFerences of opinion ; and he was too candid to attribute such doubts, as others did, to wickedness of heart. He could not, being what he was, acquiesce in the established religion as he would acquiesce in the law of the land, because it was tliere, and becau-se ihe country had accepted it, and because good general reasons could be given for assuming it to be right. The soundest arguments, even the arguments of Bishop Butler himself, went no farther than to establish a probability. But relig- ion with Newman was a personal thing between himself and his Maker, and it was not possible to feel love and devotion to a Being whose existence was merely probable. As Car- lyle says of himself when in a similar condition, a relij^ion which was not a certainty was a mockery and a hoiTor ; and unshaken and unshakable as his own convictSbns were, Newman evidently was early at a loss for the intellectual grounds on which the claims of Christianity to abstract belief could be based. The Protestant was satisfied witli the Bible, the original text of which, and perhaps the Eng- lish translation, he regarded as inspired. But the inspira- tion itself was an assumption, and had to be proved ; and Newman, though he believed the inspiration, seems to have recognized earlier than most of his contemporaries that the Bible was not a single book, but a national literature, pro- John Henry Newman. 185 duced at intervals, during many hundred years, and under endless varieties of circumstances. Protestant and Catholic alike appealed to it, and they could not both be right. Yet if tlie differences between them were essential, there must be some authority capable of deciding between them. The Anglican Church had a special theology of its own, profess- ing to be based on the Bible. Yet to suppose that each individual left to himself would gather out of the Bible, if able and conscientious, exactly these opinions and no others, was absurd and contrary to experience. There were the creeds ; but on what authority did the creeds rest ? On the four councils ? or on other councils, and, if other, on which ? Was it on the Church ? and, if so, on what Church ? The Church of the fathers ? or the Church still present and alive and speaking? If for living men, among whom new questions were perpetually rising, a Church which was also living could not be dispensed with, then what was that Church, and to what conclusions would such an admission lead us ? With us undergraduates Newman, of course, did not enter on such important questions, although they were in the air, and we talked about them among ourselves. He, when we met him. spoke to us about subjects of the day, of liter- ature, of public persons and incidents, of everything which was generally interesting. He seemed always to be better informed on common topics of conversation than any one else who was present. He was never condescending with us, never didactic or authoritative ; but what he said carried conviction along with it. AVhen we were wrong he knew why we were wrong, and pxcnsed our mistakes to ourselves while he set us right. Perhaps his supreme merit as a talker was that he never tried to be witty or to say striking things. Ironical lie could be, but not ill-natured. Not a malicious anecdote was ever heard from him. Prosy he could not be. He was lightness itself — the lightness of elastic strength — and he was interesting because he never 186 The Oxford Counter-Beformation. talked for talking's sake, but because he had something real to say. Thus it was that we, who had never seen such another man, and to whom he appeared, perhaps, at special advan- tage in contrast with the normal college don, came to regard Newman with the affection of pupils (though pupils, strictly speaking, he had none) for an idolized master. The sim- plest word which dropped from him was treasured as if it had been an intellectual diamond. For hundreds of young men Credo in Newmaiinum was tiie genuine symbol of faith. Personal admiration, of course, inclined us to look to him as a guide in matters of relig'on. No one who heard his sermons in those days can ever forget them. They were seldom directly theological. We had theology enough and to spare from the select preachers before the university. Newman, taking some Scripture character for a text, spoke to us about ouiselves, our temptations, our experiences. His illustrations were inexhaustible. He seemed to be addressing the most secret consciousness of each of us — as the eyes of a portrait appear to look at every person in a room. He never exaggerated ; he was never unreal. A sermon from him was a poem, formed on a distinct idea, fascinating by its subtlety, welcome — how welcome ! — from its sincerity, interesting from its originality, even to those who were careless of religion; and to others who wished to be religious, but had found religion dry and wearisome, it was like the springing of a fountain out of the rock. The hearts of men vibrate in answer to one another like the strings of musical instruments. These sermons were, I suppose, the records of Newman's own mental experience. They appear to me to be the outcome of continued medita- tion upon his fellow-creatures and their position in this world ; their awful responsibilities ; the mystery of their nature, strangely mixed of good and evil, of strength and John Henry Newman. 187 weakness. A tone, not of fear, but of infinite pity, runs through them all, and along with it a resolution to look facts in the face ; not to fly to evasive generalities about infinite mercy and benevolence, but to examine what revela- tion really has added to our knowledge, either of what we are or of what lies before us. We were met on all sides with difficulties ; for experience did not confirm, it rather contradicted, what revelation appeared distinctly to assert. I recollect a sermon from him — I think in the year 1839 — I have never read it since ; I may not now remember the exact words, but the impression left is iueffaceable. It was on the trials of faith, of which he gave different illustra- tions. He supposed, first, two children to be educated to- gether, of similar temperament and under similar conditions, one of whom was baptized and the other unbaptized. He represented them as growing up equally amiable, equally upright, equally reverent and God-fearing, with no outward evidence that one was in a different spiriiiual condition from the other ; yet we were required to believe, not only that their condition was totally different, but that one was a child of God, and his companion was not. Again, he drew a sketch of the average men and women who made up society, whom we ourselves encountered in daily life, or were connected with, or read about in news- papers. They were neither special saints nor special sin- ners. Religious men had faults, and often serious ones. Men careless of religion were often amiable in private life, — good husbands, good fathers, steady friends, in public honorable, brave, and patriotic. Even iu the worst and wickedest, in a witch of Endor, there was a human heart and human tenderness. None seemed good enough for heaven, none so bad as to deserve to be consigned to the company of evil spirits, and to remain in pain and misery forever. Yet all these people were, in fact, divided one from the other by an invisible line of separation. If they were to die on the spot as they actually were, some would l88 The Oxford Countcr-BeforTiiation. be saved, the rest would be lost, — the saved to have eter- nity of happiness, the lost to be with the devils in hell. Again, I am not sure whether it was on the same occasion, but it was in following the same line of thought, Newman described closely some of the incidents of our Lord's pas- sion ; he then paused. For a few moments there was a breathless silence. Then, in a low, clear voice, of wliich the faintest vibration was audible in the farthest corner of St. Mary's, he said, " Now, I bid you recollect that He to whom these things were done was Almighty God." It was as if an electric stroke had gone through the church, as if every person present understood for the first time the meaning of what he had all his life been saying. I suppose it was an epoch in the mental histoi-y of more than one of my Oxford contem- poraries. Another sermon left its mark upon me. It was upon evi- dence. I had supposed up to that time that the chief events related in the Gospels were as well authenticated as any other facts of history. I had read Paley and Grotius at school, and their arguments had been completely satisfactory to me. The Gospels had been written by apostles or com- panions of apostles. There was sufficient evidence, in Paley's words, " that many professing to be original wit- nesses of the Christian miracles had passed their lives in labors, dangers, and sufferings in attestation of the accounts which they delivered." St. Paul was a further and indepen- dent authority. It was not conceivable that such men as St. Paul and the other apostles evidently were should have con- spired to impose a falsehood upon the world, and should have succeeded in doing it undetected in an age exception- ally cultivated and sceptical. Gibbon I had studied also, and had thought about the five causes by which he explained how Christianity came to be believed ; but they had. seemed to me totally inadequate. I was something more than sur- prised, therefore, when I heard Newman say that Hume's argument against the credibility of miracles was logically John Henry Newman. 189 sound. The laws of nature, so far as could be observed, were uniform, and in auy given instance it was more likely, as a mere matter of evidence, that men should deceive or be deceived, than that those laws should have been deviated from. Of course he did not leave the matter in this posi- tion. Hume goes on to say that he is speaking of evidence as addressed to the reason ; the Christian religion addresses itself to faith, and the credibility of it is therefore unaffected by his objection. What Hume said in irony Newman accepted in earnest. Historically, the proofs were insuffi- cient, or sufficient only to create a sense of probability. Christianity was apprehended by a faculty essentially differ- ent. It was called faith. But what was faith, and on what did it rest ? "Was it as if mankind had been born with but four senses, by which to form their notions of things exter- nal to them, and that a fifth sense of sight was suddenly con- ferred on favored individuals, which converted conjecture into certainty ? I could not tell. For myself, this way of putting the matter gave me no new sense at all, and only taught me to distrust my old ones. I say at once that I think it was injudicious of Newman to throw out before us thus abruptly an opinion so ex- tremely agitating. I explain it by supposing that here, as elsewhere, his sermons contained simply the workings of his own mind, and were a sort of public confession which he made as he went along. I suppose that something of this kind had been passing through him. He was in advance of his time. He had studied the early fathers ; he had studied Church history, and the lives of the saints and martyrs. He knew that the hard and fast line which Protestants had drawn at which miracles had ceased was one which no his- torical canon could reasonably defend. Stories of the exer- cise of supernatural power ran steadily from the beginning to the latest period of the Church's existence ; many of them were as well supported by evidence as the miracles of the New Testament ; and if reason was to be the judge, no 190 The Oxford Counter-BeforTnation. arbitrary separation of the age of the Apostles from the age of their successors was possible. Some of these stories might be inventions, or had no adequate authority for thera ; but for others there was authority of eye-witnesses ; and if these were to be set aside by a peremptory act of will as unworthy of credit, the Gospel miracles themselves might fall before the same methods. The argument of Hume was already silently applied to the entire post-apostolic period. It had been checked by the traditionary reverence for the Bible. But this was not reason ; it was faith. Perhaps, too, he saw that the alternative did not lie as sharply as Paley supposed, between authentic fact and deliberate fraud. Legends might grow ; they grew every day, about common things and persons, without intention to deceive. Imagi- nation, emotion, affection, or, on the other side, fear and animosity, are busy with the histories of men who have played a remarkable part in the world. Great historic figures -^ a William Tell, for instance — have probably had no historical existence at all, and yet are fastened indelibly into national traditions. Such reflections as these would make it evident that if the Christian miracles were to be believed, not as possibly or probably true, but as indis- putably true — true in such a sense that a man's life on earth, and his hope for the future, could be securely based upon them — the history must be guaranteed by authority different in kind from the mere testimony to be gathered out of books. I suppose every tiiinking person would now acknowledge this to be true. And we see, in fact, that Christians of various persuasions supplement the evidence in several ways. Some assume the verbal inspiration of the Bible; others are conscious of personal experiences which make doubt impossible. Others, again, appeal justly to the existence of Christianity as a fact, and to the power which it has exerted in elevating and humanizing mankind. New- man found what he wanted in the living authoriiy of the Church, in the existence of an organized body which had John Heni'y Newman. 191 been instituted by our Lord Himself, and was still actively present among us as a living witness of the ti'uth. Thus tiie imperfection of the outwaid evidence was itself an argu- ment for the Catholic theory. All religious people were agreed that the facts of the Gospel narrative really hap- pened as they were said to have happened. Proof there must be somewhere to justify the conviction ; and proof could only be found in the admission that the Church, the organized Church with its bishops and priests, was not a human institution, but was the living body through which the Founder of Christianity Himself was speaking to us. Such, evidently, was one use to which Hume's objection could be applied, and to those who, like Newman, were pro- vided with the antidote, there was no danger in admitting the force of it. Nor would the risk have been great with his hearers if they had been playing with the question as a dialectical exercise. But he had made them feel and think seriously about it by his own intense earnestness ; and, brought up as most of them had been to believe that Chris- tianity had sufficient historical evidence for it, to be sud- denly told that the famous argument against miracles was logically viilid after all, was at least startling. The Church theory, as making good a testimony otherwise defective, was new to most of us, and not very readily taken in. To remove the foundation of a belief, and to substitute another, is like putting new foundations to a house, — the house itself may easily be overthrown in the process. I have said before that in a healthy state of things religion is coii- sidei'ed too sacred to be argued about. It is believed as a matter of duty, and the why or the wherefore is not so much as thought about. Revolutions are not far off when men begin to ask whence the sovereign derives his authority. Scepticism is not far off when they ask why they believe their creed. We had all been .satisfied about the Gospel history ; not a shadow of doubt had crossed the minds of one of us ; and though we might not have been able to give 192 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. a logical reason for our certitude, the certitude was in us, and might well liave been let alone. I afterwards read Hume attentively ; and though old associations prevented me from recogniziug the full force of what he had to say, no doubt I was unconsciously affected by him. I remember insisting to a friend that the essential part of religion was morality. My friend replied that morality was only possi- ble to persons who received power through faith to keep the commandments. But this did not satisfy me, for it seemed contrary to fact. There were persons of great excellence whose spiritual beliefs were utterly different. I could not bring myself to admit that the goodness, for instance, of a Unitarian was only apparent. After all is said, the visible conduct of men is the best test that we can have of their inward condition. If not the best, where are we to find a better? ^ ^_ - - Tract XQ. and its Consequences. 193 LETTER IV. TRACT XC. AND ITS CONSEQUENCES. Mt dear . After I had taken my degree, and before I re-entered upon residence as fellow, my confi- dence in my Oxford teachers underwent a further trial. I spent some months in Ireland in the family of an Evangeli- cal clergyman. I need not mention names which have no historical notability. My new friends were favorable speci- mens of a type which was then common in Ireland. The Church of England was becoming semi-Catholic. The Church of Ireland left Catholicism to those to whom it properly belonged. It represented the principles of the Reformation. It was a branch of what Mr. Gladstone has called the Upas-tree of Protestant ascendency. Mr. and the circle into which I was thrown were, to begin with, high-bred and cultivated gentlemen. They had seen the world. Some of them had been connected with the public movements of the time. O'Connell was then in his glory. I heard Irish affairs talked of by those who lived in the midst of them. A sharp line of division among the people distinguished the Protestants from the Catholics. The Protestants were industrious and thriving. Mendicancy, squalor, and misery went along with the flocks of the priest, whether as cause or effect of their belief, or in accidental connection with it, I could not tell. The country was out- wardly quiet, but there were ominous undertones of disaffec- tion. There were murders now and then in the mountains, and I was startled at the calmness with which they were spoken of. We were in the midst of the traditions of 1798. 13 194 The Oxford Counter^Beformation. My friend's father had been attacked in his palace, and the folios in the library bore marks of having been used to barricade the windows. He himself spoke as if he was living on a volcano ; but he was as unconcerned as a soldier at his post, and so far as outward affairs went he was as kind to Catholics as to Protestants. His outdoor servants were Catholics, and they seemed attached to him ; but he knew that they belonged to seciet societies, and that if they were ordered to kill him they would do it. Tiie presence of exceptional danger elevates characters which it does not demoralize. There was a quiet good sense, an intellectual breadth of feeling in this household, which to me, who had been bred up to despise Evangelicals as unreal and affected, was a startling surprise. I had looked down on Dissenters especially, as being vulgar among their other enormities ; here were persons whose creed differed little from that of the Calviuistic Methodists, yet they were easy, natural, and dignified. In Ireland they were part of a missionary garri- son, and in their daily lives they carried the colors of their faith. In Oxford, reserve was considered a becoming fea- ture in the religious character. The doctrines of Chris- tianity were mysteries, and mysteries were not to be lightly spoken of. Christianity at was part of tiie atmosphere which we breathed ; it was the great fact of our existence, to which everything else was subordinated. Mystery it might be, but not more of a mystery than our own bodily lives and the system of which we were a part. The prob- lem was to arrange all our thoughts and acquirements in harmony with the Christian revelation, and to act it out consistently in all that we said and did. The family devo- tions were long, but there was no formalism, and everybody took a part in them. A chapter was read and talked over, and practical lessons were drawn out of it; otlierwise there were no long faces or solemn affectations; the conversations were never foolish or trivial ; serious subjects were lighted up as if by an ever-present spiritual sunshine. Tract XO. and its Consequences. 195 Such was the new element into which I was introduced under the shadow of the Irish Upas-tree ; the same uniform tone being visible in parents, in children, in the indoor ser- vants, and in the surrounding society. And tiiis was Prot- estantism. This was the fruit of the Reformation which we had been learning at Oxford to hate as rebellion and to despise as a system without foundation. The foundation of it was faith iu the authority of Holy Scripture, which was supposed to be verbally inspired; and as a living witness, the presence of Christ in the heart. Here, too, the letter of the word was allowed to require a living authentication. The Anglo-Catholics at Oxford maintained that Christ was present in the Church ; the Evangelicals said that he was present in the individual believing soul, and why might they not be right ? So far as Scripture went they had promises to allege for themselves more definite than the Catholics. If the test was personal holiness, I for my own part had never yet fallen in with any human beings in whose ac- tions and conversation the spirit of Christ was more visibly present. My feelings of reverence for the Reformers revived. Fact itself was speaking for them. Beautiful pictures had been put before us of the mediseval Church which a sacrile- gious hand had ruthlessly violated. Here on one side we saw the mediseval creed in full vitality with its fruits upon it which our senses could test; on the other, equally active, the fruits of the teaching of Luther and Calvin. I felt that I had been taken in, and I resented it. Modern history resumed its traditionary English aspect. I went again over the ground of the sixteenth century. Unless the intelligent part of Europe had combined to misrepresent the entire period, the corruption of Roman Catholicism had become intolerable. Put the matter as the Roman Catholics would, it was a fact impossible to deny, that they had alienated half Europe, that the Teutonic nations had risen against them in indignation, and had substituted for the Christianity of 196 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. Eome the Christianity of the Bible. They had tried, and tried in vain, to extinguish the revolt in blood, and the na- tional life of modern England had grown up out of their overthrow. With the Anglo-Catholics the phenomena were the same in a lighter form. The Anglo-Catholics, too, had persecuted so far as they dared ; they, too, had been narrow, cruel, and exclusive. Peace and progress had only been made possible when their teeth were drawn and their nails pared, and they were tied fast under the control of Parlia- ment. History, like present reality, was all in favor of the views of my Evangelical friends. And if history was in their favor, so were analogy and general probability. Mediaeval theology had been formed at a time when the relations of matter and spirit had been guessed. at by imagination, rather than studied with care and observation. Mfnd it was now known could only act on matter through the body specially attached to it. Ideas reached the mind through the senses, but it was by method and sequence which, so far as experience went, was never departed from. The Middle Ages, on the other hand, be- lieved in witchcraft and magic. Incantation could call up evil angels and control the elements. The Catholic theory of the Sacraments was the counterpart of enchantment. Outward mechanical acts which, except as symbols, had no meaning, were supposed to produce spiritual changes, and spoken words to produce, like spells, changes in mate- rial substance. The imposition of a bishop's hands con- ferred supernatural powers. An ordained priest altered the nature of the elements in the Eucharist by consecrating them. Water and a prescribed formula regenerated an in- fant in baptism. The whole Church, it was true, had hehl these opinions down to the sixteenth century. But so it had believed that medicine was only efficacious if it was blessed ; so it had believed that saints' relics worked mira- cles. Larger knowledge had taught us that magic was an illusion, that spells and charms were fraud or folly. The Tract XQ. and its Conse(iriences. 197 Reformers in the same way had thrown off" the notion that there was aiiythiug mysterious or supernatural iu the clergy or the Sacraments. The clergy in their opinion were like other men, aud were simply set apart for the office of teach- ing the truths of religion. The Sacraments were symbols, whicii affected the moral nature of those who could under- stand them, as words or pictures, or music, or anything else which had an intelligible spiritual meaning. They brought before the miud in a lively manner the facts and principles of Cliristianity. To regard them as more was superstition and materialism. Evangelicalism liad been represented to me as weak and illiterate. I had found it in harmony with reason and experience, aud recommended as it was by per- sonal holiness in its professors, and general beauty of mind and character, I concluded that Protestantism had more to say for itself than my Oxford teachers had allowed. For the first time, too, among these good people I was in- troduced to Evangelical literature. Newton and Faber had given me good reasons when I was a boy for believing the Pope to be the man of sin ; but I had read nothing of Evangel- ical positive theology, and books like the " Pilgrim's Pi'og- ress" were nothing less than a revelation to me. I do not mean that I could adopt the doctrine in the precise shape in which it was presented to me, that I was converted, or any- thing of that kind ; but I perceived that persons who rejected altogether the theory of Christianity which I had been taught to regard as the only tenable one, were as full of the spirit of Christ, and had gone through as many, as various, and as subtle Christian experiences as the most developed saint in the Catholic calendar. I saw it in their sermons, in their hytnns, in their conversation. A clergyman, who was afterwards a bishop in the Irish Church, declared in my hearing that the theory of a Christian priesthood was a fiction ; that the notion of the Sacraments as having a me- chanical efficacy irrespective of their conscious effect upon the mind of the receiver was an idolatrous superstition -, 198 The Oxford Counter-Reformatio7i. that the Church was a human institution, which had varied in form in different ages, and might vary again ; that it was always fallible; that it might have bishops in England, and dispense with bishops in Scotland and Germany ; that a bishop was merely an officer ; that the apostolical succession was probably false as a fact — and, if a fact, implied noth- ing but historical continuity. Yet the man who said these things had devoted his whole life to his Master's service — thought of nothing else, and cared for nothing else. The opinions were of no importance in themselves ; I was, of course, aware that many people held them ; but I real- ized now for the first time that clergymen of weight and learning in the Church of P>ngland, ordained and included in its formularies, could think in this way and operdy say so, and that the Church to which Newman and Keble had taught us to look as our guide did not condemn them. Clearly, therefore, if the Church equally admitted persons who held the sacramental theory, she regarded the ques- tions between them as things indiiferent. She, the sover- eign authority, if the Oxford view of the Church's functions was correct,- declared that on such points we might follow our own judgment. This conclusion was forced home upon me, and shook the confidence which I had hitherto continued to feel in Newman. It was much in itself, and it relieved me of other perplexities. The piety, the charity, the moral excellence in the circle into which I had been thrown were evidences as clear as any evidence could be of a living faith. If the Catholic revivalists were right, these graces were but natural virtues, not derived through any recognized channel, uncovenanted mercies, perhaps counterfeits, not virtues at all, but cunning inventions of the adversary. And it had been impossible for me to believe this. A false diamond may gain credit with eyes that have never looked upon the genuine gem, but the pure water once seen cannot be mis- taken. More beautiful human characters than those of my Irish Evangelical friends I have never seen, and I have neve* Tract XC. and its Consequences. 199 seen since. Whatever might be the " Notes of the Church," a holy life was the first and last of them ; and a holy life, it was demonstratedly plain to me, was no monopoly of the sacramental system. At the end of a year I returned to Oxford. There had been a hurricane in the interval, and the storm was still raging. Not the University only, but all England, lay and clerical, was agitating itself over Tract XC. The Anglican Church had been long ago described as having a Catholic Prayer-book, an Arminian clergy, and Calvinistic Articles. When either of the three schools asserted itself with einpha^ sis the others took alarm. Since the revolution of 1G88 Clmrch and clergy had beeti contented to acquiesce in the common title of Protestant ; by consent of high and low the very name of Catholic had been abandoned to the Ro- manists ; and now when a Catholic party had risen again, declaring that they and they only were true Church of Eng- land men, the Articles, not unnaturally, had been thrown in their teeth. All the clergy had subscribed the Articles. The Articles certainly on the face of them condemned the doc- trines which the revivalists had been putting forward. Weak brothers among them were beginning to think that the Articles had committed the Church to heresy, and that they ought to secede. There were even a few who con- sidered that their position was not so much as honest. I recollect the Professor of Astronomy saying to me about this time that the obligation of a Tractarian to go to Rome was in the ratio of his intellectual obtuseness. If he was clever enough to believe two contradictory propositions at the same time, he might stay in the Church of England ; if his capacity of reconciliation was limited, he ought to leave it. It was to soothe the consciences of these troubled spirits that Tract XC. was written. As their minds had opened they had recognized in the mass, in purgatory, in the au- thority of tradition, in infallibility of councils, doctrines which down to the schism had been the ancient f^ith of 200 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. Christendom. The Articles seemed distinctly to repudiate them ; and if these doctrines were tiue the body which rejected them could be no authentic branch of the Church Catholic. Newman undertook to remove this difficulty. He set himself to " minimize " what the Articles said, just as in later years he has " minimized " the decree of Papal infallibil- ity. He tells us that he cannot understand a religion which is not dogmatic ; but he too finds tight-lacing uncomfortable ; and though he cannot do without his dogma, it must mean as little as possible for him. He argues, in the first place, that the Articles could not have been intended to contradict the canons of the Council of Trent, as was popularly supposed, because they had been composed several years before those canons were published or the Council itself completed. Sec- ondly, that they were directed not against Catholic doctrines, but ngainst the popular abuses of those doctrines. They con- demned " masses ; " they did not condemn the mass. They condemned the Komish doctrine of purgatory ; but the Rom- ish was not the Greek, and there might be many others. Finally, the Articles were legal documents, and were to be interpreted according to the strict meaning of the words. We do not interpret an Act of Parliament by what we know from other sources of the opinions of its framers ; we keep to the four corners of the Act itself. Newman said that we had as little occasion to trouble ourselves with the views of individual bishops in the sixteenth century. The English mind does not like evasion ; and on its first appearance the Tract was universally condemned as dis- honest. Very good people, my Irish friends among them, detested it, not for the views which it advocated, but as trifling with truth. I could not go along with them, partly because it had become plain to me that, little as they knew it, they themselves had at least equally to strain the lan- guage of the Baptismal Service, and of one of the three absolutions ; partly because I considered Newman's arpu- ments to be legally sound. Formulas agreed on in councils Tract XC. and its Consequences. 201 and committees are not the produce of any one mind or of any one party. They are compromises in which opposing schools of thought are brought at last to agree after many discussions and alterations. Expressions intended to be plain and emphatic are qualified to satisfy objectors, Tlie emphasis of phrases may remain, but the point emphasized has been blunted. The closer all such documents are scru- tinized the more clear becomes the nature of their origin. Certainly, if the Catholic theory is correct, and if the Holy Spirit really instructs mankind through the medium of coun- cils, and therefore through decrees which have been shaped in a manner so human, one can but wonder at the method that has been chosen. It seems like a deliberate contriv- ance to say nothing in seeming to say much ; for there ai'e few forms of words which cannot be perforated by an acute legal intellect. But as far as Tract XC. was concerned, public opinion, after faking time to reflect, has pronounced Newman acquitted. It is historically certain that Elizabeth and her ministers intentionally framed the Church formulas so as to enable every one to use them who would disclaim allegiance to the Pope. The English Catholics, who were then more than half the nation, applied to the Council of Trent for leave to attend the English Church services, on the express ground that no Catholic doctrine was denied in them. The Council of Trent refused permission, and the petitioners, after hesitating till in the defeat of the Armada Providence had declared for the Queen, conformed (the jrreater number of them) on their own terms. They had fought for the Crown in the civil wars ; they had been de- feated, and since the Revolution had no longer existed as a theological party. But Newman was only claiming a posi- tion for himself and his friends which had been purposely left open when the constitution of the Anglican Church was formed. But religions men do not argue like lawyers. The Church of England might hare been made intentionally 202 The Oxford Counfer-Beformation. comprehensive three centuries ago, but ever since 1688 it had banished Popery and Popish doctrines. When the Catholics were numerous and dangerous, it might have been prudent to conciliate them ; but the battle had been fought out since, and a century and a half of struggles and con- spiracies and revolutions and dethroned dynasties were not to go for nothing. Compromise might have dictated the letter of the Articles, but unbroken usage for a hundred and fifty years had created a Protestant interpretation of them which had become itself authoritative. Our fathers had risked their lives to get rid of Uomanism. It was not to be allowed to steal into the midst of us again under false colors. So angry men said at the time, and so they acted. Newman, however, had done his work. He had broken tlie back of the Articles. He hail given the Chui-ch of our fathers a shock from which it was not to recover in its old form. He had written his Tract, that he might see whether the Church of England would tolerate Catholic doctrine. Had he waited a few years, till the seed which he had sown could grow, he would have seen the Church unprotestantiz- ing itself more ardently than his most sauguine hope could Ii;ive anticipated, the squire parsons of the Establishment gone like a dream, an order of priests in their places, with an undress uniform in the world, and at their altars " cele- brating" masses in symbolic robes, with a directory to guide their inexperience. He would have seen them hearing con- fession, giving absolution, adoring Our Lady and professing to receive visits from her, preaching transubstantiation and purgatory and penance and everything which his Tract had claimed for them ; founding monasteries and religious orders, washing out of their naves and chancels the last traces of Puritan sacrilege; doing all this in defiance of courts of law and Parliaments and bisliops, and forcing the authorities to admit that they cannot be interfered witlj. It has been a great achievement for a single man ; not the less so that, although he admitted that he had no right to leave the Tract XG. and its Gonseqiiences. 203 Church in which he was born unless she repudiated what he considered to be true, he himself would not even pause to discern whether she would repudiate it or not. But Newman, though he forbids private judgment to others, seems throughout to retain the right of it for his own guidance. He regarded the immediate treatment of the message which he had delivered as the measure of his own duty. His convictions had grown slowly on himself; they were new to the clergy, unpalatable to the laity, violently at variance with the national feelings and traditions. Yet the bishops were expected to submit on the spot, without objec- tion or hesitation, to the dictation of a single person ; and because they spoke with natui-al alarm and anxiety, his mis- givings about the Catholicity of the Chui'ch of England turned instantly into certainties, and in four years carried him away over the border to Popery. It is evident now, on reading Newman's own history of his religious opinions, that the world, which said from the beginning that he was going to Rome, understood him bet- ter than he then understood himself, or, perhaps, than he understands himself now. A man of so much ability would never have rushed to conclusions so precipitately merely on account of a few bishops' charges. Excuses these cliarges might be, or explanations to account for what he was doing ; but the motive force which was driving him forward was the overmastering "idea" to which he had surrendered himself. He could have seen, if he hacl pleased, the green blade of the Catholic harvest springing in a thousand fields ; at pres- ent there is scarcely a clergjTnan in the country who does not carry upon him in one form or other the marks of the Tractarian movement. The answer which he required has been given. The Church of England has not only admitted Catholic doctrine, but has rushed into it with extraordinary enthusiasm. He might be expected to have recognized that his impatient departure has been condemned by his own . arguments. Yet the " Apologia " shows no repentance nor 204 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. explains the absence of it. He tells us that he has found peace in the Church of Rome, and wonders that he could ever have hoped to find it in the English Communion. Very likely. Others knew how it would be from the first. He did not know it; but if the bench of bishops had been as mild and enduring as their present successors, it would have made no difference. Newman was living at Littlemore, a village three miles from Oxford, when I came back from Ireland. He had given up his benefice, though still occasionally preaching in St. Mary's pulpit before the University. He was other- wise silent and passive, though his retirement was suspected, and he was an object of much impertinent curiosity. For myself he was as fascinating as ever. I still looked on him — I do at this moment — as one of the two most remarka- ble men whom I have ever met with ; but I had learnt from my evangelical experiences that equally good men could take different views in theology, and Newmanism had ceased to have exclusive interest to me. I was beginning to think that it would be well if some of my High Church friends could remember also that opinions were not everything. Many of them were tutors, and tutors responsible for the administration of the University. The discipline was lax. the undergraduates were idle and extravagant ; there were scandalous abuses in college management, and life at the University was twice as expensive as it need have been. Here were plain duties lying neglected and unthought of, or, if remembered at all, remembered only by the Liberals, whom Newman so much detested. Intellectually, the con- troversies to which I had listened had unsettled me. Diffi- culties had been suggested which I need not have heard of, but out of which some road or other had now to be looked for. I was thrown on my own resources, and began to read hard in modern history and literature. Carlyle's books came across me; by Carlyle I was led to Goethe. I discovered Leasing for myself, and then Neander and Schleiermacher. Tract XC. and its Consequences. 205 The " Vestiges of the Natural History of Creation," whicii came out about that time, introduced modern science to us under an unexpected aspect, and opened new avenues of thought. As I had perceived before that the Evangelicals could be as saint-like as Catholics, so now I found that men of the highest gifts and uuimpeached purity of life could differ from both by whole diameters in the interpretation of the same phenomena. Further, this became clear to me, that the Catholic revival in Oxford, spontaneous as it seemed, was part of a general movement wliich was gohig on all over Europe. In France, in Holland, in Germany, intellect and learning had come to conclusions from which religion and conscience were recoiling. Pious Protestants had trusted themselves upon the Bible as their sole founda- tion. They found their philosophers and professors assum- ing that the Bible was a human composition — parts of it of doubtful authenticity, other parts bearing marks on them of the mistaken opinions of the age when these books were written; and they were flying terrified back into the Church from which they had escaped at the Reformation, like os- triches liiding their heads in a bush. Yet how could the Church, as they called it, save them ? If what the philosophers were saying was untrue, it could be met by argument. If the danger was real, they were like men caught in a thunderstorm, flying for a refuge to a tree, which only the more certainly would attract the light- ning. Catholics are responsible for everything for which Protestants are responsible, plus a great deal besides which Protestants rejected once as lies, and the stroke will fall where the evidence is weakest. Christianity, Catholic and Protestant alike, rests on the credibility of the Gospel history. Verbal inaccuracies, if such there be, no moi-e disprove the principal facts related in the Gospels than mistakes in Lord Clarendon's History of the Rebellion prove that there was never a Commonwealth in England. After all is said, these facts must be tested by testimony, like all 206 The Oxford Counter-Beformation. other facts. The personal experiences of individuals may satisfy themselves, but are no evidence to others. Far less can the Church add to the proof, for the Church rests on the history, not the history on the Church. That the Church exists, and has existed, proves no more than that it is an institution which has had a beginning in time, and may have an end in time. The individuals of whom it is composed have believed in Christianity, and their witness is valuable according to their opportunities, like that of other men, but this is all. That the Church as a body is immortal, and has infallible authority antecedent to proof, is a mere assump- tion, like the tortoise in the Indian myth. If the facts cannot be established, the Catholic theory falls with the Piotestant ; if they can, they are the common property of mankind, and to pile upon them the mountains of incredi- bilities for which the Catholic Church has made itself an- swerable, is only to play into the hands of unbelievers, and reduce both alike to legend. Still, the reaction was a fact, visible everywhere, espe- cially in Protestant countries. The bloody stains on the Catholic escutcheon were being painted over. Tlie savage massacres, the stake at Smithfield, and the Spanish auto-da- fe, the assassinations and civil wars and conspiracies at which we had shuddered as children, were being condoned or ex- plained away. Hitherto it had been strenuously denied that the Oxford movement was in the direction of Rome ; it was insisted rather that, more than anything else, Tractarianism would tend to keep men away from Rome. No Protestant liad spoken harder things of the Roman see and its doings than Newman had, and I was still for myself unable to be- lieve that he was on his way to it. But the strongest swim- mers who are in the current of a stream must go where it carries them, and his retirement from active service in the Church of England showed that he himself was no longer confident. The Lives of the Saints. 207 LETTER V. THE LIVES OP THE SAINTS. My dear . I said in my last letter that at the time at which Newman withdrew from Oxford to Litilemore there was nothing to lead us generally to suppose that he meditated secession. Tract XC, in spite of the outcry, had not been condemned by any legally constituted court. No existing law had been broken by it, and there was no likelihood of fresh Parliamentary legislation. He had in fact won the battle. He had established his principle. If he chose to hold and teach his Catholic doctrines as a mem- ber of the Churrh of England, it was clear that he would not be driven ont of it. If he had meant to leave the Church of England, Tract XC. would have been gratuitous and an impertinence. Thus, when it was announced that he was to bring out a series of biographies of distinguished English saints, the pro- posal seemed to fall in with the theory of the continuity of the mediaeval and the existing English Church. The great names upon the Calendar belonged not to Rome, but to us ; they were part of our national history, and when I was my- self asked to assist, the proposal pleased and flattered me. I suppose now that the object was to recommend asceticism, and perhaps to show that the power of working miracles had been continued in the Church until its unity was broken. But no such intention was communicated to us. We wei-e free to write as we pleased, each on our own responsibility. For myself I went to work with the assumption which I thought myself entitled to make, that men who bad been 208 Tlie Oxford Counter-Beformation. canonized had been probably good men, and at least remark- able men. It was an opportunity for throwing myself into medieval literature, and studyiug in coutemporary writings what human life had really been lilie in this island, in an age of which the visible memorials remained in churches and cathedrals and monastic ruins. I do not regret my undertaking, though I little guessed the wilderness of perplexities into which I was throwing my- self. I knew that I was entering a strange scene, but antici- pation is not sensation, nor had anything which I had liitherto read prepared me completely for what 1 should find. The order of nature, whether always unbroken or not, is gener- ally uniform. In the lives of the Christian saints the order of nature seems only to have existed to give holy men an opportunity of showing their superiority to material condi- tions. The evidence is commonly respectable. The biogra- pher may be a peisonal friend, or at least the friend of a friend; }'et not "Jack the Giant-Killer " or the "Arabian Nights " introduces one more entirely into a supernatural world. When a miracle occurs, the unbeliever is astonished ; tiie believer, who records the story, ^ees no more than he expects. He looks only to the object, and if the motive is sufficient, the more marvellous tlie event the more likely it is to have occurred, and the less it requires proof or critical examination. If a sceptic dares to doubt, it is only that he may be the more utterly confounded. The accounts are given gravely, as if they were of real facts, without grace, without imagination, without any of the ornamental work of acknowledged invention, — the sublime and ridiculous mixed together indiscriminately, with the ridiculous largely predom- inating. Was it possible that such stuff could be true ? or even intended to be taken for truth ? Was it not rather mere edifying reading for the monks' refectories ; the puerile ab- surdities thrown in to amuse innocently their dreary hours? Was it not as idle to look for historical truth in the lives of the saints as in " Amadis de Gaul " or " Orlando Furioso " ? The Lives of the Saints. 209 It seemed so, and yet it seemed not so. For the great saiuts (or for the small saints where tliey had founded re- ligious houses) there were special commemorative services, in which their most grotesque performances were not for- gotten. It was not easy to believe that men specially called religious, and who considered truth to be one of the duties which religion prescribed, could thus deliberately consecrate what they knew, and would admit, to be lies. There is a class of composition which is not history, and is not con- scious fiction — it was produced in old times ; it is produced in our times ; it will be produced wherever and as long as human society exists — something which honestly believes itself to be fact, and is created, nevertheless, by the imagina- tion. The stories of the Edda were not felt to be I'alse when they were sung in old Danish halls. The genuine myth is not invented — is not written — but grows. It be- gins from a small seed, and unfolds into form as it passes from lip to lip. It is then assigned by tradition to a par- ticular person. " The story I tell you came from So-and-So," says some one, wishing to give it credibility. " He was on the spot and saw or heard it." " So-and-So " may never have heard of it ; but the story may still survive and carry his name along with it as a further legend. Now, and always, remarkable persons become mythical. Anecdotes are told of them, almost always inaccurate ; words are as- signed to them which they never spoke. Smaller lumi- naries are robbed to swell the greatness of the central orb. We, in these days of equality, disbelieve in exceptional heroes, as the Middle Ages believed in them. Disbelief shows itself in scandal. There is a pleasure in finding that an eminent man is but a mortal after nil, and proof of weak- ness can be discovered if it is wanted. Great qualities, on the other hand, are masfnetic, and every report, good or evil, true or false, about persons possessed of them is likely to stick. Hero-worship and saint-worship are honorable forms of a universal tendency ; but it is idle to expect from wor- 14 210 Tlie Oxford Counter-Reformation. shippers an accurate investigation into fact. Evidently llie stories which I was studying were legends, though in sober prose — legends which were never examined into, because it would have been a sin to doubt them. There was one sceptic even among the apostles; but St. Thomas was held up as an example to be shunned. According to the doc- trines of the Church the spirit of belief was angelic, the spirit of doubt was devilish ; and thus in devout ages, and in the devout atmosphere of convents and monnsteiies, the volume of spiritual wonders grew unchecked. To balance evidence and compare the degrees of it is mere waste of time. The evidence of such witnesses is worth nothing, un- less they can be produced and cross-examined. The child when he has first seen a conjurer, the disciple who has been at a spiritualist's stance, cannot report faithfully what has passed immediately under his eyes. To have seen some- thing which he cannot understand delights him, and he de- scribes it with the unconscious omissions and exaggerations which make a natural explanation impossible. So it was with the hagiologist. He tells his story in good faith. Perhaps we have the authentic narrative of an eye-witness. Yet the only fact of which we can feel assured is that he believed, or professed to believe, that the subject of it worked mira- cles. He has a conviction, to begin with, that holy men had powers of this kind, and therefore it was a matter of course that these powers should have shown themselves. Character is no protection. We may assume that Aiiselm, for instance, would report nothing which he did not suppose to be true ; but piety, which is a security for good faith, is none against credulity ; or perhaps, if we could have asked Anselm, we should have found that his very notion of truth was not our notion ; that he meant by truth, truth of idea, rather than literal truth of fact. Intellect, again, is 1:0 pro- tection. Among the sa'nts' biographers are found the great- est names in the Church. Athanasius wrote a life of St. Anthony ; Bede wrote a life of St. Cuthbert. It is not too Tim Lives of the Saints. 211 much to say that both these distinguished men, and the thousand smaller men who followed in their tracks, were possessed, and that things which were not appeared to them as things that were. So it is in our own time. The pious Catholic tells us that he cannot resist the evidence for the liquefaction of the blood of St. Januarius ; that is, any num- ber of witnesses can be brought to declare that they have seen it. If the smallest civil action in an English court of justice turned on the liquefying of blood under similar circumstances, and a thousand witnesses swore they had seen it, the evidence would go for nothing, unless the sub- stance called blood had been examined and analyzed by competent chemists, and the process repeo^d in the pres- ence of trained observers. Ordinary spectators see phe- nomena every day which to them are equally inexplicable, at Maskelyne and Cooke's. Miracles, authenticated by the same kind of testimony, and the same degree of it, are worked at Loui'des and at Knock, and at saints' shrines, and at mesmeric doctors' reception rooms. The testimony of credulous and ignorant people in such cases is simply worth- less, and the multiplication of nothing remains nothing still. As to St. Januarius, it is noticeable ihat a mira- cle, closely resembling that which modern Catholics be- lieve, used to be worked iu the same Neapolitan territory in the Roman times. Horace, describing the various stations at which he stopped on his way from Rome to Brindisi, says, — Deliinc Goatia Lymphis Iratis extructa dedit risusque jocosque, Dum flamma sine thura liquescere limine sacro Persuadere cupit. Credat Judaeus Apella, Non ego — namque Deos didici securum agere sevum ; Nee siquid miri faciat natura Deos id Tristes ex alto cceli dimittere tecto. Cardinal Newman, with the Jew Apella, would have believed in the supernatural liquefaction of the incense. Horace in like manner would " laugh and jest " at St. Jauu- 212 The Oxfm'd Counter-Beformation. arius. It is not a matter of proof but of temperament. Why should we allow our convictions on the most serious of subjects to be influenced by evidence which we should not dare to admit if we were deciding a common civil or criminal case? For an intending biographer this was a serious discovery. I could not repeat what I found written, for the faith was wanting. A spiritualist many years after assuied me that I could work a miracle myself if I had but faith. Could I but have faith in the Great Nothing all things would be possible for me — but, alas ! I had none. So with the lives of the saints. St. Patrick 1 found once lighted a fire with ici(;les, changedji Welsh marauder into a wolf, and floated to Ireland upon an altar stone. I thought it nonsense. I found it eventually uncertain whether Patricius was not a title, and whether any single apostle of that name had so much as existed. After a short experiment I had to retreat out of my occupation, and let the series go on without me. But the excursion among the Will-o'-the-wisps of the spir- itual morasses did not leave me as it found me. I was compelled to see that in certain conditions of mind the distinction between objective and subjective truth has no existence. An impression is created that it is fit, right, or likely that certain things should take place, and the outward fact is assumed to correspond with that impression. When a man feels no doubt, he makes no inquiry, for he sees no occasion for it; yet his conviction is as complete as the most searching investigation could have made it. His own feeling that something is true is to him complete evidence that it is true. True it may be ; and yet not true in the sense which he attaches to the word. There are several kinds of truth. There is the truth of pure mathematics, which is perfect as long as it concerns lines or figures which exist only as abstractions. There is the truth of a drama like " Hamlet," which is literary invention, yet is a true picture of men and women. There is the truth of a fable. The Lives of the Saints. 213 There is the truth of an edifying moral tale. There is the truth of a legend which has sprung up involuntarily out of the hearts of a number of people, and therefore represents something in their own minds. Finally, there is the dull truth of plain experienced fact, which has to be painfully sifted out by comparison of evidence, by observation, and, when possible, by experiment, and is held at last, after all care has been taken, by those who know what truth of fact means, with but graduated certainty, and as liable at all times to revision and correction. The distinction, commonplace as it seems, was forgotten by the hagiologists. It is forgot- ten, for that matter, by most historians. All men, when their feelings are interested, believe what they wish to believe, or what their preconceptions represent to them as internally probable. Theologians avow that other methods besides examination of evidence are required to establish the truths of faith. The truths of faith must be held with absolute certitude. The truths of science, the most assured of them, are held only as high probabilities; and the evi- dence has therefore to be supplemented by emotion, imagi- nation, and speculative reasoning, introduced from adjoining provinces. Cardinal Newman describes in his " Grammar of Assent " the process by which probabilities are converted into certainties; with the help of it he can justify his own belief in the miracle at Naples. He can create antecedent likelihoods which dispense with completeness of proof, or remove antecedent unlikelihoods which call for fuller and more minute proofs. It is the theory on which, uncon- sciously held, the crop of legends in the Catholic Church has grown for century after century, and is growing now luxu- riant as ever. It is the theory on which Our Lady is be- lieved to be showing herself in France, in Ireland, or more recently to the Anglican monks at Llantony. It is not a theory by which any truth was ever discovered that can be tested, and sifted, and verified by experiment, or applied to the practical service of minkind. 214 The Oxford Counter-Beformation. And this leads me to say a very few words on a subject to which I alluded in an earlier letter ; the question that rose fifteen years ago between Cardinal Newman and Chai-Ies Kingsley. Mr. Kingsley, writing impetuously as he often did, said that the Catholic clergy did not place truth among the highest virtues, and he added that Father Newman acknowledged it. Father Newman asked him when he iiad acknowledged it, and a controversy followed in which Kings- ley, instead of admitting, as he ought to have done, that he had spoken unadvisedly and in too sweeping terms, defended himself, and defended himself unsuccessfully. Kingsley, in truth, entirely misunderstood Newman's character. New- man's whole life had been a struggle for truth. He had neglected his own interests ; he had never thought of them at all. He had brought to bear a most powerful and subtle intellect to support the convictions of a conscience which was superstitiously sensitive. His single object had been to dis- cover what were the real relations between man and his Maker, and to shape his own conduct I)y the conclusions at which he arrived. To represent such a person as careless of truth was neither generous nor even reasonable. But Newman as little understood his adversary. He was not called on, perhaps, to look far into a subject which did not concern him. He had been attacked, as he thought, wan- tonly. He struck back ; and he struck most effectively. Kingsley, however, had passed through his own strug- gles. He, too, had been affected at a distance by the agita- tions of the Tractarian controversy. He, like many others, had read what Newman had written about ecclesiastical miracles. The foundations of his own faith had been dis- turbed. He was a man of science ; he knew what evidence was. He believed that Newman's methods of reasoning confounded his perceptions of truth, disregarding principles which alone led to conclusions that could be trusted in other subjects, and which, therefore, he could alone trust in reli- gion. His feelings had been, perhaps, embittered by the The Lives of the Saints. 215 intrusion of religious discord into families in wliich he was interested, traceable all of it to the Oxford movement. He himself had determined to try every fact which was offered for his belief by the strict rules of inductive science and courts of justice ; and every other method appeared to him to be treason to his intellect, and to reduce truth, where truth of fact was before everything essential, to the truth of fable, or fiction, or emotional opinion. This was at the bottom of his mind, however unguardedly he expressed himself. He was au orthodox Protestant. The outward evidence for the Gospel history was strong in itself. It was supplemented by the effect which Cliristianity had produced in the world, by the position which it had assumed, and the renovation which it had produced in the human heart and character. It was supplemented in himself by personal experience. He has told me of answers which he had received to his prayers. But this, as he was well aware, was evidence to himself alone. He stood, practically, on the broad ground that religion, that the fear of God, was alone able to make alive the nobler part of man's nature. Tliis was plain mat- ter of outward experience wliich the whole history of tlie world could verify. To him, when he was placed as a clergyman in the Church of England, the fear of God was bound up with the form of religion established in his own country. He knew as well as any one that human errors were continually forcing themselves into the popular creeds. There had been changes in the past, there might be changes in the future ; meanwhile, he held fast himself by the Eng- lish Church as it had been purified by tlie Reformers in the sixteenth century. In his opinion, to take up again the tra- ditions and beliefs which had been then abandoned, was to return like the dog to his vomit — a thing impossible to do sincerely, a thing impious to attempt to do in wilfulness or fancy, and certain to avenge itself by a contemptuous rejec- tion of all religion whatever. The Puritans had white- washed the churches, broken the windows in which the 216 The Oxford Cotmter-Eeformatian. miracles of the saints had shone in glorious colors, replaced the pictures on the walls with plain texts from Scripture. They would have no lies either taught or suggested in God's house, wliatever might be done elsewhere. The Catholic reaction, with its decorations, its choral services, its celebra- tions, its vestments, its wardrobe of devotional machinery, was simiUirly detestable to Kingsley. If the creed was true, uo tone of voice could be too plain and simple in repeating facts of such infinite importance. To leave it to be chanted by a parcel of boys in surplices could but suggest at last that it was not true, as facts are true ; but was on the level of song or legend like a ballad of Robin Hood. Newman's influence had begun the wild dance, and Kingsley had always thought of him with a kind of resentment. But enough of this. I return to the lives of the saints and their effect upon myself. The conclusion which I had drawn was tliat ecclesiastical biographers had composed their stories with the freedom of epic poets, and that reli- gious truths resembled rather the truths of poetry than tlie truths of liistory. I had been taught by Newman that tliere was no distinction in kind between the saints' miracles and the miracles in the Bible. The restoration of the dead man to life by touching Elisha's bones corresponded to tha cures performed by relics. The changing the water intu wine, the coin in the fish's mouth, the devils in the svviue, the calming of the storm on the lake, the walking on the sea. were stories which, if we met anywhere but where they were, we should call legends ; wliiJe the power of the saints, like that of apostles and prophets, was exerted chiefly in healing the sick and raising the dead to life. The parallel had been forced upon us to gain credibility for the marvels of ecclesiastical history ; but it was natural, it was inevitable, that the alternative possibility should now suggest itself, that all supernatural stories were legendary wherever we found them. Hume's argument, we had been already told, was intellectually correct. It was more likely, The Lives of the Saints. 217 as a mere question of human probability, that men should deceive or be deceived, than that the continuity of nature should have been disturbed. Faith, we had b. eii also told, was to come to the assistance of reason, and reverse the conclusion ; but faith was not made more easy when the burden which it was to carry was enlarged by these volumi- nous additions. The authenticity and inspiration of the Gospels had been assumed till quite recent times as a fact as certain as our own existence. To question either had been forbidden by the law of the land, and biblical criticism had been as impotent as the investigations into the preten- sions of holy persons whom the Church had predetermined to canonize. So long as the belief remained unshaken, any answer sufficed for objections. But the case was now al- tered. Great German scholars had cotiie to a widely differ- ent conclusion. Very able men of unblemished character, here at home and elsewhere, were doubting about it ; and this could no longer be concealed. To frighten us off, their personal character had been libelled. I had been brought up to believe that not even a Dissenter could be a really good man, and that unbelievers were profligates seeking only an excuse for indulging their wicked passions. Such arguments are spectres formidable while they produce fear, but provoking reaction and even indignation when the ghost is found to be but a stuffed figure streaked with phosphorus. It is a very serious thing when a man is brought to recognize that truths, which he has been taught to look upon as undisputable, are not regarded as truths at all by persons competent to form an independent opinion. Such questions need not have been raised in this country. The Oxford revivalists had provoked the storm, but had no spell which would allay it. They did not try to allay it. They used it for their own cause. Those whom I had known best were now far on their way to Rome. " Either us or nothing," they said. " You see where reason leads you. You see what has come of the Reformation. If you 218 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. do not believe in the Church Catholic and Apostolic, you have no right to believe in God — and the Church Catholic is the Church of Rome." So my friends argued. I could not myself admit the alter- native. Difficulties there might be, but they told as heavily against Catliolics as against Protestants. If the historical foundations of Christianity were shaken, the Church of Rome was in as much danger as the Cli urch of England or the Church of Scotland. It was in' more danger, from the additional load of incredibilities which the Protestants had flung from them. As a matter of experience Catholic countries had bred more infidels than Protestant countries. Voltaire and the Encyclopaedists had been pupils of the Jesuits. Vergniaud and Barbaroux, Danton and Robespierre, had been taught as children to pray to the Virgin and the saints. Charles Kings- ley liad solid ground under his feet compared with the gilded clouds on which the Catholic enthusiasts imagined that they were floating into security. Newman himself never talked in this wild way. He was too conscious of his own obligation to his early teaching. Protestantism did, as a fact, sustain the belief in Christian- ity, whether its reasonings were sound or unsound ; and he was too wise, too seriously in earnest, to press the logic of alternatives. He was glad that people should believe any- how, and he had never fallen into the scornful note in which Evangelicals had been scoffed at. But what he said and what he wrote tended practically to the same end. He was surrendering himself to an idea, and was borne along by it as if he were riding on a nightmare. Soon after we heard that he had himself gone over. He had gone, it seems to me (after reading all that he has said about it in the " Apo- logia"), as men go when under a destiny, not because their intellect has been convinced by evidence and argument, but because they are impelled by some internal disposition which they suspect while they deny it. His friends might have taken the plunge with a light heart. They had been living The Lives of the Saints. 219 in an enchanted circle of thoughts and formulas, and their minds for long had never strayed beyond them. Newman's intellect was keen and clear as ever. He at least knew what he was about. It might have occurred to him to ask when the resolution was once taken, " What am I not doing, if it is all a dream ! " My eldest brother had left to us younger ones, as a char- acteristic instruction, that if we ever saw Newman and Keble disagree, we might think for ourselves. The event which my brother had thought as impossible as that a double star should fly asunder in space, had actually occurred. We had been floated out into mid-ocean upon the Anglo-Catho- lic raft, buoyed up by airy bubbles of ecclesiastical senti- ment. The bubbles had burst, the raft was splintered, and we — I mean my other brother and myself — were left, like Ulysses, struggling in the waves. I need not trouble you with our particular fortunes. I shall have to write you one more letter, and I shall tell you then the little which need be said of my own experiences. It was thought that when Newman went he would create a secession like that of the Free Kirk in Scotland. This was a mistake. With him, either before or immediately after, a few men did go of known ability : Hope Scott, Frederick Faber, Ward of the " Ideal," the two Wilberforees, Robert and Henry, and two or three others. The rest, inconsider- able in numbers, were Newman's personal disciples, undis- tinguished save by piety of life. The seed has grown since, and is still growing, chiefly in families of the better classes, as they are called, among people who have money enough to live upon and nothing to do. Among them the effect has been very wide, and to appearance not salutary. Wives have quarrelled with their husbands, and Imsbands witli wives ; the sou has been set against the father, and the father against the son ; thousands of liouseholds have been made miserable by young people dissatisfied with their spiritual condition, and throwing themselves upon Catholic 220 The Oxford Coiinter-Beformation. priests because they require, as tliey fancy, something deeper and truer " than was enough for the last century." Great lords and ladies, weary of the emptiness of their lives, liave gone to the Church of Rome for a new sensation. Con- version has hec-ome fashionable. With the help of Ireland the Catholics have simultaneously become a power in Par- liiuTient. Cardinals and Monsignors are to be seen in London drawing-rooms. Convents and monasteries are multiplying. A Catholic tide is still flowing, and no one yet can say how far it may rise. It has affected at present the idle and the ignorant, and has left untouched the indus- trious and intelligent ; but the influence on society has been very considerable. More remarkable, and infinitely more mischievous, has been the general influence of the Tractarian movement ou the Church of England. It was thought at first that New- man's secession had destroyed the pai'ty which he had called into being. The shepherd was smitten and the shi ep were scattered. The Evangelicals could say that ihey had been right from the first. Catholic principles led to Rome ; they had no place in a Protestant Church. But for the clergy sacerdotalism had a fatal attraction : it gave them professional consequence ; they thought that ihey could keep their wives and their livings and yet recover and wield again their old spiritual authority. They rallied from their confusion ; they brightened up their churches ; they revo- lutionized their rituals. In learning they were more than a match for their Low Church antagonists. The courts of law were appealed to in vain. The more the history of the Reformation was studied, the more plain became the origi- nal intention that Catholics who would abjure the Pope should be comprehended under the Anglican formulas. The Low Church liad had their innings; the High Church have now their turn. Had we to live again through the struggle of 1829, we should no longer speak of Catholic emancipation, but of Roman Catholic. The change in the meaning of the The Lives of the Saints. 221 Wjord marks the change in popular opinion. Externally the Ritualists have won the battle. They too have their absolutions and their masses, and their monks aud nuns and miracles and the rest; and it has been decided that they may keep them. But what a price has the victory cost I The nation has ceased to care what the clergy say or do. The Church of England, as part of the constitution of the country, has ceased to exist. Political latitudiuariauism goes on upon its way. The barriers of privilege fall before it. The Third Estate of the realm can no more stay the stream of change than a rush can stay the current of a river. As the Church has become " Catholic," the honored name of Protestant has passed to the Nonconformist. The laity stand aloof, indifferent and contemptuous. The thinking part of it has now a seriousness of its own and a philosophy of its own which has also grown and is growing. The old order of things might have remained indefinitely had it been left undisturbed ; but the controversy has undermined its traditions. Questions have been provoked which now must have a real answer. The clergy magnify their office, but the more they make of themselves the less is their intel- lectual influence. The great body of the English people, which is Protestant to the heart, will never allow their pre- tensions ; and while they are discussing among themselves the nature of their supernatural commission, they are driv- ing science and criticism to ask if there is anything in the world supernatural at all. The storm will die away, agita- tion is wearisome, and we may subside into a dull acquies- cence even with the traA'estie of ecclesiasticism which is now in possession of the field. But the active mind of the coun- try will less and less concern itself with a system which it despises. A ritualist English Church will be as powerless over the lives of the people as the Roman ausurs over the Rome of Cicero and Ca3sar ; and centuries will pass before religion and common sense will again work together with 222 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. the practical harmony which existed between them in the days of Whately and Arnold, and Hare and Sedgwick. This is the substance of what I have to say to you, and here I might end; but something is still left which will re- quire another letter. The Oxford Counter-Be/ormation. 223 LETTER VI. Mr DEAR . My narrative is ended. I have told you what I can personally remember of the origin and course of the Tractarian movement. I have now to add a few more words about the remaikable man whose name has been so often mentioned in these letters. I said that I thought he had been possessed with a particular idea. His own words will explain what I conceive that idea to have been. Cardinal Newman is the one thinker of commanding intellect who has advised us to seek shelter from the dis- tractions of this present age in the Roman Catholic Church. A passage in the "Apologia" is a photograph of his inmost heart, and explains the premisses of which this is the con- clusion. It is long, but it is so beautiful that the reader who has never seen it before will wish that it was longer. 1 will say afterwards, in my poor language, why I for one could not go with him, but preferred to steer away into the open ocean. I believed that it was a siren's song, and that the shore from which it came had been strewn for centuries with the bones of the lost mariners who were betrayed by such enchanting music. Starting with the being of God (which is as certain to me as the certainty of my own existence, though when I try to put the grounds of that certainty into logical shape, I find a difficulty in doing so, in mood and figure, to my satisfaction), I look out of myself into the world of men, and there I see a sight which fills me with unspeakable distress. The world seems simply to give the lie to that great truth of which my whole being is so full ; and the effect upon me is in consequence, as a matter of necessity, as confusing as if it denied that I am in existence myself. If I 224 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. looked into a mirror and did not see my face, I should have the sort of feeling which actually comes upon me when I look into this living busy world and see no reflex of its Creator. This js to me one of the great difficulties of this absolute primary truth to which I referred just now. Were it not for the voice speak- ing so clearly in my conscience and my heart, 1 should be an Atheist, or a Pantheist, or a Polytheist, when I looked into the world. I am speaking for myself only, and I am far from deny- ing the real force of the arguments in proof of a God, drawn from the general facts of human society ; but these do not warm me or enlighten me ; they do not take away the winter of my deso- lation, or make the buds unfold and the leaves grow within me, and my moral being rejoice. The sight of the world is nothing else than the prophet's scroll, full of lamentation, and mourning, and woe. To consider the world in its length and breadth, its various history, the many races of men, their starts, their fortunes, their mutual alienation, their conflicts ; and then their ways, habits, governments, forms of worship, their enterprises, their aimless courses, their random achievements and acquirements, the im- potent conclusion of long-standing facts, the tokens so faint and broken of a superintending design, the blind evolution of what turn out to be great powers or truths ; the progress of things as if from unreasoning elements, not towards final causes; the great- ness and littleness of man, his far-reaching aims, his short dura- tion, the curtain hung over his futurity ; the disappointments of life, the defeat of good, the success of evU, the pervading idola- tries, the corruptions, the dreary, hopeless irreligion, that condi- tion of the whole race so fearfully yet exactly described in the •Apostle's words, " Having no hope, and without God in this world ; " all this is a vision to dizzy and appall, and inflicts upon the mind a sense of profound mystery which is absolutely beyond human solution. What shall be said of this heart-piercing, reason-bewildering fact 1 I can only answer that either there is no Creator, or this living society of men is, in a true sense, discarded from his pres- ence. Bid I see a boy of good make and mind, with the token on him of a refined nature, cast upon the world without provi- sion, unable to say whence he came, his birthplace or his family connections, I should conclude that there was some mystery con- The Oxford Counter-Beformation. 225 nected with his history, and that he was one of whom, for one cause or another, his parents were ashamed. Thus only should I be able to account for the contrast between the promise and condition of his being. And so I argue about the world ; if there be a God, since there is a God, the human race is implicated in some terrible aboriginal calamity. It is out of joint with the purposes of its Creator. This is a fact, a fact as true as the fact of its existence ; and thus the doctrine of what is theologically called original sin becomes to me almost as certain as that the world exists, and as the existence of God. And now, supposing it were the blessed and loving will of the Creator to interfere in this anarchical condition of things, what are the methods which might be necessarily or naturally involved in his object of mercy ? Since the world is in so abnormal a state, sui'ely it would be no surprise to me if the interposition were of necessity equally extraoidinary, or what is called miracu- lous. But that subject does not directly come into the scope of my present remarks. Miracles as evidence involve an argument ; and I, of course, am thinking of some means which does not im- mediately run into argument. I am rather asking what must be the antagonist by which to withstand and baffle the fierce energy of passion, and the all-corroding, all-dissolving scepticism of the intellect in religious inquiries. I have no intention at all to deny that truth is the real object of our reason ; and that if it does not attain to trvitb, either the premiss or the process is in fault ; but I am not speaking of right reason, but of reason as it acts in fact and concretely in fallen man. I know that even the unaided reason, when correctly exercised, leads to a belief in God, in the immortality of the soul, and in a future retribution. But I am considering it actually and historically, and in this point of view I do not think I am wrong in saying that its tendency is towards a simple unbelief in matters of religion. No truth, however sacred, can stand against it in the long run ; and hence it is that in the Pagan world when our Lord came, the last traces of the religious knowledge of former times was all but disappearing from those portions of the world in which the intellect had been active, and had had a career. And in these latter days in like manner, outside the Catholic Church, things are tending with far greater rapidity than in that old time, from the circumstances of the age, to Atheism in one 15 226 The Oirford Counter-Beforviation. shape or another. What a scene, what a prospect does the whole of Europe present at this day ! And not only Europe, but every government and every civilization through the world which is under the influence of the European mind. Specially, for it most concerns us, how sorrowful, in the view of religion, even taken in its most elementary, most attenuated form, is the spectacle pre- sented to us by the educated intellect of England, France, and Germany ! I/Overs of their country and of their race, religious men external to the Catholic Church, have attempted various expedients to arrest fierce human nature in its onward course, and to bring it into subjection. The necessity of some form of religion for the interests of humanity has been generally acknowledged ; but where was the concrete representative of things invisible, which would have the force and the toughness necessary to be a breakwater against the Deluge ? Three centuries ago, the establishment of religion — material, legal, and social — was generally adopted as the true expedient for the purpose in those countries which separated from the Catholic Church, and for a long time it was successful ; but now the crevices of those establishments are admitting the enemy. Thirty years ago ^ education was relied upon. Ten years ago there was a hope that Wars would cease forever, under the influ- ence of commercial enterprise and the reign of the useful and fine arts. But will any one venture to say there is anything anywhere on this earth which will afford a fulcrum for us whereby to keep the earth from moving onwards? The judgment which experience passes on establishments, on education, aa a means of maintaining religious truth in this anar- chical world, must be extended even to Scripture, though Scripture be divine. Experience proves surely that the Bible does not an- swer a purpose for which it was never intended. It may be acci- dentally the means of the conversion of individuals ; but a book, after all, cannot make a stand against the wild, living intellect of man ; and in this it begins to testify, as regards its own structure and contents, to the power of that universal solvent which is so successfully acting upon religious establishments. Supposing, then, it to be the will of the Creator to interfere in human affairs, and to make provision for retaining in this world a knowledge of Himself, so definite and distinct as to be proof 1 This was written in 1865. The Oxford Covmier-Bsformation. 227 against the energy of human scepticism ; in such a case — I am far from saying that there was no other way — but there is nothing to surprise the mind, if He should think fit to introduce a power into the world invested with the prerogative of infalli- bility in religious matters. Such a provision would be a direct, immediate, active, and prompt means of withstanding the diffi- culty; it would be an instrument suited to the need; and when 1 find that this is the very claim of the Catholic Church, not only do I feel no difficulty in admitting the idea, but there is a fitness in it which recommends it to my mind. And thus I am brought to speak of the Church's infallibility as a provision adapted by the mercy of the Creator to preserve religion in the world; and to restrain that freedom of thought which of course in itself is one of the greatest of our natural gifts, and to rescue it from its own suicidal excesses. And let it be observed that neither here nor in what follows shall I have occasion to speak of the revealed body of truths, but only as they bear upon the defence of natural religion. I say that a power possessed of infallibility in religious teaching is happily adapted to be a working instrument in the course of human aflfaira for smiting hard and "throwing back the immense energy of the aggressive intellect ; and in saying this, as in the other things that I have to say, it must still be recol- lected that I am all along bearing in mind my main purpose, which is a defence of myself. It has been said that reason is the faculty which finds rea- sons for what we wish to believe, and the saying is true in so far as it implies that there are in every human being emo- tional and mental tendencies which suggest the premisses of arguments, dispose the lights and shadows in which external facts shall appear, and make conclusions appear to one per- son to be satisfactorily made out when to another they shall seem resting upon air. I believe that the passage which you have just read explains Newman's history. When he came to see the condition of the world into which he was thrown the aspect of it was unspeakably distressing. His whole efforts have been spent in finding a solution of the problem which would make existence on such terms less intol- erable. 228 The OxfwcL Counter-Beformation. On the same broad ground on which Cardinal Newman places himself, I will shift the lights, and let the sliadows fall the otlier way. Following his own analogy of the out- cast boy, I will suppose a reasonable being with faculties limited like ours, with a belief in God like ours, but with no more immediate knowledge, suddenly introduced from another planet into our own earth, confronted with the phe- nomena which Cardinal Newman describes, and asked for an explanation of them, consistent with his I'eligious convic- tion. Would such a being infer that the race which he was studying was implicated in some terrible aborigintd calam- ity? I do not see how the inference would help him. I think if he was wise he would feel his inability to give any explanation at all. But I suppose that before attempting the problem he would look into the past history of the earth, and into the various races of animated beings by which it was occupied. He would see that man is only the highest of many varieties ; that he is made on the same type as a large class of other animals ; that as their bodies are a clumsy likeness of man's body, so their minds are a clumsy likeness of his mind. If he looked into the habits of these animals he would find no law among them but violence, no right but strength ; no sign of disinterested affection, no ob- ject save the gratification of hunger or lust; the will and appetite of each creature only held in check by the will and appetite of other creatures more powerful ; one generation exactly like another, with no capacity for looking forward, or accumulating knowledge and experience. Turning next to man, he would observe, too, that he had the same animal nature. In many countries he would see that the habits of man were scarcely superior to those of the beings below him,, that he was savage and. ignorant as they, and that his progenitors from immemorial time had lived in the same way. Going back to the earliest traces of human life, the rude flint instruments, the cave dwellings, and such other memorials as survive, he would infer that The Oxford Gounter-Beformation. 229 the primitive men everywhere had been as the savages are now, the nature which tliey shared with other animals en- tirely predominating ; that not a vestige was to be found of any higher civilization which had once existed and had de- cayed ; that the lower animals had come into being for many ages before man ; that man himself had risen slowly from the animal's level to the position which he now occupies. Supposing then Cardinal Newman to have drawn a fair picture of the world as it stands at present, would the in- quirer be likely to think that the human race was like a boy of whom its parents were ashamed ? He would be un- able to form the slightest idea why or how such a I'ace had been created ; but he would see that in addition to the qual- ities of other creatures men had capacities of memorj', of moral sense and reason ; that having been furnished with these capacities, they had been left to raise themselves by their own exertions ; and that by fits and starts, sometimes springing forward, sometimes even seeming to recede, they had made their way to their existing state, a state falling fir short of imaginary perfection, but far elevated also abiive the point from which they had set out ; the defects only proving that the victory of the higiier over the lower nature was still incomplete. He would see that man with all his faults had not only been able to acquire a knowledge of Nature, but had learnt to rule the elements, to make the lightning carry his messages, and persuade fire and water to bear him over sea and land ; that he had learnt to rule his own appetites, to form notions of justice, to feel love and compassion, and indignation at wrong ; that he had even raised his eyes to heaven, and had formed conceptions which had grown purer and more spiritual as his knowledge extended of his Maker's will and nature. I am not the least pretending that this has been the actual history of man in this planet, but it is unquestionably the opinion which a stranger would form coming into it from without, and drawing his inferences from the facts which 230 The Oxford Counter- Reformation. he would find. Far from thinking that the being wliose nature he was studying was suflfering from some fundamen- tal calamity, lie would conclude rather that man was in a state of discipline for the exercise of his powers, and slowly, through conscience and intellect, was rising to a knowledge of God. Man sins, it is true, and sin is an offence against God ; but it is an offence only because the being capable of it has acquired a conception of a moral law. By the law sin entered ; and the self-reproach of the sinner is the recog- nition of his obligations. The actions which are sinful in us are not sinful in themselves, but only in reference, as Butler says, to ihe nature of the agent. Murder and in- cest, robbery, cunning, rage, and jealousy are not sinful in animals. They tear each other in pieces, and we find from their anatomical structure tliat they were intended to do it. Man as an animal inherits the same dispositions ; as an intellectual and moral being he has conquered them par- tially if not yet entirely, and so far from giving signs that he has fallen from any higher state, analogy and reason would rather suggest that he was on the way to a higher state. This, I say, is the impression which an indifferent spec- tator would be at least as likely to form about mankind and their situation, as to think with Cardinal Newman that mankind were outcasts, that their intellect was their most dangerous enemy. Leaving the spectator then, let me go on for myself. Cardinal Newman says that the intellect is naturally scepti- cal ; that it destroyed the faith of the old world ; that it is destroying still more rapidly the faith of modern society, and that religion can only be saved by some power which can smite the intellect back and humble it. Is this true ? Is it not rather true that the intellect is the enemy only of falsehood ? That if it keeps watch over religion, if it is jealous of novelties and unproved assertions, if it instinc- tively dreads lies, and lies in religion most of all because such lies are most mischievous, it is because experience has The Oxford Counter-Reformation. 231 shown that without unceasing watchfulness religion degener- ates into superstition, and that of the canlsers wliich corrupt human character superstition is the worst. Religious knowledge has grown like all other knowledge. Partial truths are revealed or discovei-ed. They ai'e thought to be whole truth, and are consecrated as eternal and com- plete. We learn better, we find that we were too hasty, and had mistaken our own imaginations for ascertained realities. "No truth, however sacred," Cardinal Newman says, "can stand against the reason in the long run, and hence it is that in the pagan world, when our Lord came, the last traces of the religious knowledge of former times was all but disappearing from those portions of the woi'ld where the intellect was active and had had a career.'' What is the fact ? In tiie early stages of the Greek and Roman nations certain opinions had been formed about the gods ; and certain religious services had been instituted. In these traditions there was much that was grand and beautiful ; there was much also that was monstrous and incredible. As civilization developed itself both conscience and intellect protested and declared that the pagan theology could not be wholly true. If the Olympian gods existed, they were not beings whom it was possible to reverence ; and the established creed having broken down, men were left face to face with nature, to learn from fact what the Divine ad- ministration of tills world really was. They might be at a loss for an answer, and the grosser natures among them might be demoralized by absolute unbelief; but the diffi- culty itself had risen not from impiety but from piety. They had become too eidightened to attribute actions to the gods which they despised or condemned in one anotlier. Was this scepticism ? It was a scepticism then whicli was shared by the apostles, who called the heathen gods devils. As Tennyson says — There lies more faith in honest doubt, Believe me, than in half the creeds. 232 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. The unbelief in the Roman Empire, when our Lord came, was a Prteparatio Evangelica. Great and good men disbe- lieved, not because ihey hated religion and wislied to be rid of it, but because they would not call evil good, nor paradox a sacred mystery. The recognition that certain things were not true was the first step towards acceptance of what was true ; and the ready hearing which Christianity met with proves the eagerness with which light was being looked for. Horace is a typical Roman of the intellectual sort, an Epicurean, and an unbeliever in the established religion. Horace says — • Dis te mlnorem quod geris, imperas. Hinc omne princifiium, hue refer exitum. Di multa neglecti dederunt Hesperise mala hictuosie. This is not the language of acquiescence in atheism, Christianity grew because the soil was ready prepared, be- cause the intellect "had had a career," and had broken the back of superstition. The teachers of a new religion would have had but a short shrift in the days when Calchas could sacrifice Iphigenia. Special doctrines of the Christian faith had even begun to form independent of it. In Caesar's time few cultivated men believed in a future life. Under the Antonines the most intellectual men of iheir age had come to believe it ; and intellect had led them to the gate of the Christian Church. As it was in the first century so it had been in the sixteenth. Again the truth had been crusted over with fictions. Again the intellect rose in protest, and declared that incredibilities should not be taught any longer. But they cleared away the falsehood as they broke the painted windows in the churches, only that the clear light of heaven might shine the brighter. Even Cardinal New- man himself has been, perhaps unwillingly, under the same influence. He professes horror at the thought of an auto- da-fe, and personally is unable to believe that such offerings The Oxford Counter-Beformation. 233 could be approved of by such a being as he supposes God to be. But these " acts of faith " were once regarded as right- eous and necessary by the infallible authority which is to prevent us from thinking for ourselves. The human intellect, I believe, will never voluntarily part with truth which has been once communicated. It hates lies, lies especially v^hich come to it armed with terror in the place of argument. Possibly, in some instances, when it has found truth itself in bad company, its suspicions may have been roused without occasion. Falsehood, it has been said, is no match for truth, but it may be more than a match for truth and authority combined. Between men of intellect and priesthoods there has seldom been good agreement. Each regards the other as intruding upon his special domain. Priests and prophets went on ill together under the old dispensation. The prophet denounced the priest as a ritu- alist. The priest murdered the prophet with the help of popular superstition. But Cardinal Newman tells us that intellect is unbeliev- ing, that it needs to be smitten back and humbled, and that he finds the Catholic Church peculiarly constituted for the purpose. God is estranged from the world. He takes pity on its lost state by establishing in the Church a special rep- resentative of tlimself. We know how it is with mankind generally, from the want of religion which appears in their conduct. If the Church is to sliow us how to live better, we ma}', we must, expect to find in the Church not a teacher oidy but an example, for if it be no better than the world, then we have the same reason for supposing God to be estranged from the Church. Cardinal Newman refers us especially to the condition of the countries which separated from Rome in the sixteenth century. Are the countries which remained in the Papal communion superior morally to those who left it ? The bishops and priests had the edu- cation of France entirely in their hands after the Revocation of the Edict of Nantes. The result was the generation who 234 The Oxford Counter-Reformation. made the Eeign of Terror and abolished Christianity. Ger- many and England and America are not all which they ought to be ; but is Catholic Ireland much better, or Catholic Spain ? or Italy, which till a few years ago was more Catholic tlian either of them ? We have Church history, for now eighteen hundred years ; or, if we choose to put it so, from the constitution of tlie Israelite nationality. What the Israelites were their own recoids testify. So far as conduct went they were like other nations. They had good kings and bad, good priests and bad, true prophets and false. They had their periods of idolatry. They had their periods of outward repentance and ceremo- nial punctiliousness. But when truth came among them, they had no special power of recognizing it, nor special will to welcome it. The heads of the Church rejected our Lord : the publicans and sinners received him. Of the ten lepers who were cleansed, nine went to the priests : one only gave glory to God, and he was a Samaritan. The piiest and Levite passed by tlie wounded man ; the Samaritan had mercy on him. In Christian times the depositories of the infallibility which is to keep intellect in order have been the popes and bishops, speaking through their councils and act- ing through the ecclesiastical courts. When we look into the accounts of what these persons were, we find the same in- equalities which are to be met with in all combinations of men, and in all human institutions ; here, as elsewhere, we find saints and sinners : in one generation noble endeavors after holiness ; hi another worldliness, luxury, intrigue, ambition, tyranny, even ferocious cruelty. Unless Catholic writers have combined to calumniate their mistress, Rome was as venal under the popes as Jugurtha found her under the Republic ; and the Church courts were a byword for iniquity in every country in Europe. The religious orders, which were founded expressly to exiiibit a pattern of saintly life, became too corrupt to be allowed to continue in exist- ence. When the printing-press was invented, and the Bible The Oxford Counter-Beformation. 235 came to be read by the people, the contrast was so violent between religion as exhibited in the New Testament and religion as taught and exercised by the infallible Church that half Europe broke away from it. Cardinal Newman's theory implies that the Reformation was the rebellion of the intel- lect against the spiritual authority which was in charge of it. The authority must have done its work but ill if it had bred a generation of apostates. The Holy See when it found its power endangered behaved as ordinary human potentates behave on such occasions, ^d potentates not of the best kind. She filled Europe with wars. She stirred princes to massacre their subjects. The rack, the gibbet, and the stake were her instruments of persuasion as long as she had strength to use them. When her strength began to fail, she tried con- spiracy and murder ; and only now, in these late times, when the despised intellect lias created a tribunal to which she is answerable in the public opinion of mankind, has she reformed her own manners and attempted to explain away her atrocities. Well for her that these sad methods have been abandoned. Were the Chui'ch to treat but one man or woman in these days of ours as three centuries ago she treated tens of thou- sands, she would be rent in pieces by the common indigna- tion of the entire human race. As it is, she remains doing the work which is still appointed for her. But if an institu- tion with such a history behind it is au exceptional instrument to bear witness to God's existence ; if it be the voice through which alone He speaks to man, and makes known His na- ture and His will ; then the attempt to understand this world, and what goes on in it, had better be abandoned in despair. ORIGEN AND CELSUS. When the seed of the forest tree begins to germinate, and the cotyledons burst their ligaments and lift themselves into light, the growing plant thenceforward gathers its nutriment out of the air. The massive trunk of the oak which has stood for a thousand years, is composed chiefly of vapors absorbed through the leaves and organized into fibre by the cunning chemistry of nature. Some few mineral sub' stances enter into its composition, and are taken up out of the soil through the roots. But these grosser elements are slight in comparison with those of more ethereal origin ; how slight, may be measured by the handful of dust which remains when the log has been consumed in the furnace, and the carbon and hydrogen have returned to the source from whence they came. An animal is formed of the same materials, and is developed by analogous laws. A single cell with the force called life in it collects a congregation of gaseous atoms, and out of the atoms fashions a man. Men, again, are taken hold of by a further action of the living principle, and are formed into families and nations, societies and institutions ; each held together by vital force, and dis- solving when the force disappears. But all of them, indi- viduals and nations alike, are made out of atoms lent to tliem for a while out of the aerial envelope of the globe, to be reclaimed after a, brief incarnation. The smallest urn suffices to preserve such remnants of a man as cannot be decomposed into vapor. 238 Origen and Celsus. Spiritual organizations are the counterpart of the material. Intellect and imagination are forever scattering in millions the seeds of aspirations or speculations. From time to time some one out of these millions is " brought to bear,'' and becomes a theory of politics, a system of philosophy, a tra- dition, a poem, or a creed. The idea is the life; the organ- ized form is assimilated out of the opinions and desires already floating in the minds of mankind. Some root in fact there may be. But the facts which can be seen, and handled, and verified by experience, are infinites! mally small. Accidental conditions may be needed to quicken au idea into an active force. But when once the idea has begun to grow, and organic tissue to be formed, the sole source of nourishment is again the spiritual — air. It was once supposed that man was made of clay ; that all things which had visible form and bulk were formed out of elements possessing a property of solidity; that air could not become solid, nor solids become air ; and much illusory physiology was based on this hypothesis. There has been similar waste of labor and ingenuity in looking for histori- cal facts as the basis of national traditions. The facts which we discover will not account for the consequences which seemed to grow of them. The Romans traced their Romu- lus to the gods ; the modern popular historian regards Romu- lus as a robber shepherd ; but he has still to explain whence the idea came which developed the shepherd's descendants into an imperial race ; and when he looks for his reasons in the " soil," in the circumstances of t!ieir situation, he is like a man who would find the secret of the tree in its ashes, or would explain the lifting of the Himalayas by a force which would not elevate a mole-heap. The philosophy of history is gradually discerning that the amount of fact discoveiable in early legends is extremely small, and that when discov- ered it is extremely unimportant. Legends are perceived to have risen out of the minds, and characters, and purposes of the people to whom they belong, and are only interesting Origen and Celsus. 239 as they show what those minds, and characters, and pur- poses were. In like manner, theological critics are throw- ing away valuable effort over the facts supposed to underlie the origin of Christianity. They forget the simile of the grain of mustard-seed to which the kingdom of heaven was compared by Christ himself; and they seek for the living in the dead. They sift the Gospel to separate tiie true from the false. They desire to ascertain precisely the events which occurred in Palestine eighteen or nineteen centuries ago ; and suoli events as survive the process, and can be ac- cepted after passing through the critical crucible, will be but ash or charred cinders. The truth, as it was, can never be discovered. The historical inquirer can look only through the eyes of the early Christian writers ; and those writers neither saw as he sees, nor judged as he judges. The his- torical inquirer sees with the eye of reason ; the early Chris- tian saw with the eye of faith. The historical inquirer is impartial ; the early Christian was enthusiastic and prepos- sessed. The historical inquirer demands evidence such as would satisfy a British jury in a criminal case ; to the early Christian the life, and death, and resurrection of Christ were their own evidence, each detail of it the symbol of some spiritual reality, and every event of it intrinsically probable iis it availed for the edification and elevation of the human soul. Thus the data do not exist to establish an evidential conclusion. The early Christians did not inquire, and therefore have left no record of inquiry. St. Paul was con- verted by a vision. The vision was sufficient for him, and he pointedly abstained from examining witnesses or strengtli- ening his conviction by outward testimony. To us the ulti- mate fact is the existence of belief — belief created by such evidence as was convincing to the minds of the first converts. The evidence was sufficient for them, but they did not argue as we argue; their methods of inference were not our methods of inference ; we can see only Christianity coming into existence as a living force ; and, as of the oak 240 Origen and Celsus. tree, we do not ask, Is ' it true or is it false ? we ask, Is it alive ? so with Christianity, we see a spiritual germ, quick- ened suddenly into active being, which grew and took pos- session of the human race, overthrowing every other force with which it came into collision, and eventual!}- revolution- izing the entire character of human thought and energy. Life is not truth merely, but it is, as Plato says, to eTTLxeiva T^s dA.ij0eia;, something above trutii and more than truth ; a force in visible operation which remains a mystery to the intellect; and it is immortal, not as the properties of the circle are immortal, but as it propagates itself in eternal descent, body after body which it has animated successively perishing, but forever reorganizing iiself anew in fresh and developed lornis. Tlie individual oak tree grows old. Its functions become torpid. Its boughs clothe themselves more scantily with leaves. It ceases to expand. At length it de- cays, and is resolved into the elements. But it has dropped its acorns from its branches, and in the a;'orn it lives .iigain, in a new body, the essential qualities unchanged, the unes- sential and accidental passing away into other combinations. The Christianity of the first century was, and yet was not, the Christianity of the fourth century. The Christianity of the fourth century was, and vet was not. tTie Christianity of feudal Europe. The Christianity of feudal Europe died at the Reformation, and was born again in Protestant Chris- tianity. Even things which we call dead are still subject to the eternal laws of change. Forces are forever at work, integrating and disintegrating the atoms of which the in- organic world is composed. Only in the intellectual abstrac- tions of geometry, or in numbers which have no existence save in the conceptions of the intellect, do we find proposi- tions of which we f-an predicate with certainty unalterable trutli. Whatever ha^ its beinj in time and space is under the conditions of transiency ; but the transient is interpen- etrated with life ; every livins thonsrht which has quick- ened into vital organization, and has developed into flower Origen and Celsus. 241 and fruit, renews its energies while time endures ; and, in the strictest sense of the words, the gates of death do not prevail against it. Religion, as a rule of life, neither is, nor can be, a record of events which once occurred on a corner of this planet. It is the expression and statement of our duties to one another, and of our relations to the Sovereign Power which has called us into existence. And these duties and these relations are not conditions wliich once were or which will be iiereafter. They are conditions of our present being, as much as what we call the laws of nature. For the laws of bodily health we are not dependent on the observations of Galen, or the history of the plague at Athens. We learn from present experience, as Galen himself learnt, and we refer to the records of the past only as a single chapter in the vast volume of our instruc- tions. The evidence of the truth of religion is not the testi- mony of this or that person who saw, or thought he saw, long ago, something which seemed to him an indication of a supernatural presence. The evidence is the power which lies in a religion to cope with moral disease, to conquer and bind the brutal appetites and intellectual perversities of man, and to lift him out of grossness and self-indulgence into higher and nobler desires. This was what Christianity eflfected as no creed or system of philosophy ever did before or has done since, and Christianity was thus, as Goethe de- clares, beyond comparison the grandest work which was ever accomplished by humanity. It is a height, he says, from which, having once risen to it, mankind can never again descend ; and thus of all studies the most interesting to us is that of the conditions under which so extraordinary a force developed itself. "Within historical times the earth has never seen — let us hope it may never see again — such a condition of human society as prevailed in the Roman Empire during the cen- turies which elapsed between the Crucifixion and the con- version of Constantine. When we look back over distant 16 242 Origen and Celsiis. periods the landscape is foreshortened, and we discern hut the elevated features of it. The long level intervals, where common life was the most busy, are lost to us almost entirely. We have the list of emperors, with their various achieve- ments ; the light falls into the palaces ; we catch glimpses of questionable palace ladies, of intriguing favorites, and ambi- tious statesmen ; we see the dagger, cord, or poison cup which removed prince after prince to make room for his successor with horrid uniformity. We read of invasions by barbarians, of fierce battles on the Danube, or the Euphrates, and the frontier advancing or receding. The units which form the sum of mankind we do not see ; they are of small significance save to themselves and their families. In hundreds of mil- lions they play their little parts upon the stage, and pass away and are forgotten because no one cares to notice oi- speak of them. Yet it is of these multitudes that humanity consists, and by the thoughts obscurely working in the minds of them the destinies of humanity are eventually controlled. In the centuries of which I speak ten generations of men were born and lived and died. The empire was sprinkled with cities, towns, villages, and farmsteads, all thronged like anthills, and in a fair state of outward civilization. Political discontent was rare and easily suppressed. Order was moderately main- tained, and was disturbed only by occasional bands of robbers. Men of fortune resided on their estates, shot and hunted, went to the watering-places in hot weather, and kept their yachts. Merchants and manufacturers made money. Artisans and shopkeepers pursued their various trades. Peasants tilled their wheatfields or their vineyards. School- masters or family tutors drilled the boys. State-paid pro- fessors taught in the universities. Philosophers wrangled. Priests presided in the shrines and temples, and held pro- cessions and celebriitions on holydays. Peace, quiet, in- dustry, was everywhere, with an air of grace and harmonious culture ; and below the surface was a condition of morality, at least among the educated classes, which words cannot Origen and Celsus. 243 describe or modern imagination realize. Moral good and moral evil were played with as fancies in the lecture rooms; but they were fancies merely, with no bearing on life. The one practical belief was that pleasure was pleasant. By pleasure was meant the indulgence of the senses ; and the supremest enjoyment which art and philosophy combined to recommend, was the most loathsome and unmentionable of vices. The poor may have been protected from the worst contamination by the iiecessities of hard work, (he ignorant by the simplicity of their understanding. But so far as culture " cast its shadow," the very memoiy disappeared that there was any evil except bodily pain, or any good save in sensuality. The supreme deity led the way in impurity. The inferior divinities followed the ex- ample, which descended from them into the palace of the emperors. Adrian and Antinous were but another, and aliis ! more real, Zeus and Ganymede. The Stoics preached austerity ; the Academics, virtue ; the Platonists, the aspira- tion after the ideal. Stoics, Academics, Platonists, were as vicious in practice as the pampered legionary who scoffed sit their speculations. In the schools of Athens, where the most gifted youths in the Empire came to be educated in the worship of the beautiful, the professors illustrated their lessons by the practical corruption of their pupils. Freely as Lucian scattered his sarcasms over all classes of society except the lowest, he reserves his choicest arrows for the philosophers. Of all kinds of men who had fallen under the range of Lucian's eye, the philosophers were the worst. The nearest in infamy after them, and but a single degree better, were the priests and ministers of the established re- ligion. Men of ability had long ceased to believe in the Olympian gods. Men of ability. Epicureans all or most of them, believed in nature and natural laws. They believed in experience, they believed in what their senses told them — what lay beyond they regarded as a dream. But reli- gion was still a convenient instrument to preserve the peace 244 Origen and Celsvs. of the Empire. The majority of mankind were fools, and would continue fools. The belief in imaginary supernatural beings, who might reward or punish in another world, was a check on the passions of the strong, a consolation to ihe weak in their sufferings. Even if superstition was mis- chievous in itself it could not be eradicated. Tlie accepted traditions therefore were preserved and treated with affected respect. The more outrageous features were softened into allegory. The new creeds and deities with which the spread of the Empire brought the Romans in contact were pro- tected and patronized, and enthusiasm and religious excite- ment were allowed play within reasonable limits. The mysteries of Ceres and Dionysus superseded the old Temple worship. Serapis was admitted to equality with the Olym- pians. The Caesars were taken into heaven and carried up their favorites with them. For the most part there was an outward show of decency, but the creed was a conscious imposture. The ceremonial became infected more and more with the general impurity, and the Mysteries, which per- haps originally arose from a desire for something purer and better, became a veil at last for the most detestable oigies. When Adrian's " favorite " Antinous died, the Egyptians built a town and shrine in his honor, and Antinopolis became a scene of miracles as constant as those at Lourdes. At this point religion had perhaps reached its nadir — lower than this it has never descended upon earth. The degrada- tion was now as complete as the genius of evil could make it. The shocked conscience of mankind, never wholly extinct, was already kindling into resentment ; and as in political catastrophes revolution is nearest when tyranny is at its worst, so in moral putrefaction the germs are quickening of a new order of things. There is this difference only, that the overthrow of a government is swift and sudden ; the regeneration of character is slow and deliberate. Politi- cal convictions disappoint expectation. The enthusiasm of revolt is a conflagration which expires when the fuel is Origen and Celstts. 245 consumed. A religious revolution advances steadily in the hearts of mankind, and each step that is gained is a conquest finally achieved. Lucian was able to see that some vast religious change was approaching ; but Lucian could not discern the direction from wliich it was coming. Chris- tianity was working in a sphere too low for him. Spiritual regeneration begins naturally among the poor and the humble, for it begins in the strata of society which are least corrupt. First individuals are found intent on reforming their own wretched lives, with no thought of converting the world. Individuals gather circles about tiiem. The circles spread and lay down rules for themselves and simple formulas of doctrine. The material lies scattered everywhere ready to organize. The supreme idea which can assimilate it is found at last, but not immediately. There are false starts : spurious seed is sown with the good, and springs up as weeds. Tentatively, gradually, and after severe competi- tion, the fittest survives. From the moment of the final conquest of Asia by the Romans, when the Asiatic and European philosophers were brought in contact, an intellectual fermentation had been active. Theosophic theories were formed in infinite variety, some fanciful and withering in a season ; some strong, like Manicheism, and protracting a vigorous existence for centu- ries. Enthusiasts, impostors, prophets, started up, " boasting themselves to be somebody." Enchanters, magicians, necro- mancers, dealers with spirits, were everywhere making fame and fortune out of sick souls pining for knowledge of the invisible world. The most illustrious of these Cagliostros of the old world, Apollonius of Tyana and Alexander of Aboni- tichus, blazed into a splendor which shone over the whole Empire. Into the midst of this strange scene of imposture, profli- gacy, enthusiasm, and craving for light, Christianity emerged out of Palestine with its message of lofty humility. The quack prophets claimed to be gods or pons of God. They carried 246 - Origen and Celsus. their credentials with them in the form of pomp and power. They worked miracles, they invited fools to worship them, and in return they promised the faithful infinite rewards of gold and pleasure. The teachers of Christianity called them- selves also apostles of a son of God ; but their Son of God was a village carpenter, who had lived in sorrow and had died on the cross, and their message was a message never heard before on earth. It was to invite their fellow-men to lead new lives, to put away sin, to separate themselves from the abominations of the world, to care nothing for wealth and to be content with poverty, to aim only at overcoming, each for himself, his own sensuality and selfishness ; to welcome pain, want, disease, everything which the world most shrank from, if it would assist him in self-conquest, and to expect no reward, at least in this life, save the peace which would arise from the consciousness that he was doing what God had • commanded. Such a message naturally found readiest acceptance among those whom ignoi'ance had protected from philosophy ; who had lived in hardship, and had been least enervated by what was called pleasui'e. Rich men could not easily abandon substantial enjoyments in pursuit of so imaginary an object as the elevation of their characters. Men of intellect had heard too much of sons of God, and had seen too many of them, to attach significance to the alleged appearance of another in Judasa. The earlj' Clu'istian converts were those who had little to part with, whose experiences of life were hard already, and who found the hardness of their lot made more bearable by the knowledge that want and sorrow were no evils, and might be actually good for them. Intellectually they were called on to believe nothing which in itself was difficult. Such men knew nothing of science or of laws of nature. The world as they knew it was a world already full of signs and wonders. There was nothing wonderful in the coming to earth of a Son of God, for the Jews had been told to Origen and Celsus. 247 expect Him ; and the Gentiles believed that He had come in the person of Augustus Ceesar. A miracle was ns little improbable in itself as any other event. The heroes had risen from the dead, and ascended into heaven, and were seen as stars nightly in the sky. The only distinction between the wonders of Christianity and the wonders whicli they already believed, was tliat the spirits with whose oper- ations they had been hitherto familiar, were evil or mischiev- ous spirits, or spirits at best indifferent to good. In the new revelation the spirits of God were seen taking part in the direction of human affairs, and defeating the powers of dark- ness in their own world. Thus the doctrine announced was precisely of the kind which the hearers were prepared to re- ceive ; and it was preached in perfect good faith, because the teachers were on the same intellectual level with their audi- ence. They were men of noble natural disposition, natural gifts, natural purity of mind, but they were unlearned. They knew nothing of science or art, and, with the exception of St. Paul, nothing of literature, nothing of politics, nothing of the world around them. St. Paul had been well edu- cated, yet his scientific knowledge had been cairied only far enough to betray him into error, wlien he illustrated the resurrection of the body from the growth of a grain of wheat, which he supposed to die and rise again. Contem- porary naturalists were as well aware then as now, that if the grain was dead it would not rise again. In its earliest stages the Church absorbed the common superstitions of its day ; as converts multiplied, the circle uripides may say, — The day and night are ministers of man. Why more of man than of ants and gnats, to whom night brings sleep, and day the return of energy ? Ai'e we lords of the animals because we capture and devour them? Do not they equally chase and devour us ? And we must use nets and weapons and hounds and huntsmen, while nature has given weapons to them sufficient with no such assist- ance. So far as nature goes it might be rather said that Origen and Celsus. 263 God had subjected man to beasts. Will a higher place be claimed for man because he lives in cities and rules himself by laws? So do ants and bees. They too have their chiefs, their vrars, their vii'tories, their captured enemies : they have their towns and suburbs, their division of labor, their punish- ment for drones: they have cemeteries for their dead: they converse and reason when they meet on the road. To one looking down from heaven no such mighty difference would appear between the doings of men and the doings of ants. The universe was no more made for man than for the lion, the eagle, or the dolphin. One created being is not better in itself than another. All are but parts of one great and- perfect whole, and this whole is the constant care of tlie providence of God. He does not forget it and turn to it at intervals when it has become corrupt. He is not angry with it nor threatens to destroy it on man's account any more than on account of apes and flies. Each thing in its place fulfils its allotted work. No God or Son of God has ever come down to this earth or will come. The Jews profess to venerate tlie heavens and the inhabitants of the heavens ; but the ptrandest, the most sublime, of the wonders of those high regions they will not venerate. They adore the phantasms of the dark, the obscure visions of their sleep ; but for those bright and shin- ing harbingers of jrood, those ministers by whom the winter rains and the summer warmth, the clouds and the lightnings and the thunders, the fruits of the earth and all living things are generated and preserved, those beings in whom God re- veals his presence to us, those fair celestial heralds, those angels which are angels indeed, for them they care not, they heed them not. They dream of a God who will burn all created things to cinders, and will raise up them to life again in their fleshly bodies. It is not to gratify such appetites of disordered minds that God presides in this universe. He rules in justice and u|(rightness. To the soul He may grant immortality. The flesh is but a perishing excrement which 264 Origen and Cdsus. He neither will save nor, though you say that with Him nothing is impossible, is able to save, for He is Himself the reasou of all things, and He cannot contradict his own nature. The Jews as a separate nation have their own institutions and their own religion, and the Government does not inter- fere with them. Different peoples have each their special modes of thouglit and action, and it is good to preserve a community in the form in which it has grown. It may be too that the I'arth from the beginning has been partitioned into spiritual prefectures, each under a viceroy of its own, and that each province prospei's best when left to its own ruler. National laws and customs are of infinite variety, and each nation prefers its own. If in this spirit the Jews are tenacious of their traditions, they are not to be blamed ; but if they pretend to the possession of special secrets of knowledge, and refuse, as unclean, a communion with the rest of mankind, tliey must be taught that their own dogmas are not peculiar to them. They worship the God of heaven ; the Persians sacrifice on the hill-tops to Dis, by whom they mean the circle of the sky; and it matters little whether we name this Being Dis or " the Most High,'' or " Zeus," or " Adonai," or " Sabaoth," or "■ Ammon,'' or with the Scythi- ans " Papa." The Egyptians and the Colchi were circum- cised before the Jews ; the Egyptians do not eat swine's flesh, nor the flesh of many animals beside ; the Pythago- reans touch none. As to outward signs that God has any special care for the Jews, what has become of them ? Not knowing the truth and enchanted by vain illusions, they have been swept away out of their country and bear the penalty of their arrogance. Allow that the Cliristians' master may have been some angel : was he the first or the only angel that has come into the world ? The Christians themselves tell of many more who, they say, rebelled and are confined in chains in the hollow of the earth, and they pretend that the hot springs Origen and Celsus. 265 are their tears. Some of them imagine that the Demiurgus, or Creator, was not the Father of Christ, and that Christ came to bring men from tlie Demiurgus to his Father. There are the Simonians among them who worship Helen or her master Helenus. Otliers derive themselves from Marcellina, others from Salome, others from Mariainne, or from Martha. And tliere are, again, the Marcionites. Some of these sects prostrate themselves in darkness before im- agined demons with rites more abominable than the orgins in the College of Autinous ; they curse each other with hor- rid imprecations, and will yield no point for concord ; yet, amidst their mutual reproaches, they all sing to the one note, " The world is crucified to me, and I to the world ; " " If you will be saved, believe, or else depart from us." Who is to decide among them ? Are those who would be saved to throw dice to learn to whom to attach themselves? Again, there are the Ophiatae, or serpent worshippers — a tree of knowledge, with the serpent for the good spirit, and with Demiurgus for the evil spirit. There are the prophetic oracles, circles within circles, water flowing from the Church on earth, virtues distilled from the Prunic Vir^in,^ the soul living, the sky slain that it mifrht live again, the earth stabbed with an altar knife, human beings sacrificed and re- stored, death ceasing out of the universe when sin shall die, the narrow road, the gates flying open of their own accord, everywhere the tree of life, and the resurrection of the flesh from off the tree — I suppose because their master was crucified, and was himself a worker in wood. Had he been thrown from a cliff, or into a pit, or been hanged ; had he been a shoemaker, or a mason, or a smith, we should have had the rock of life, the gulf of resurrection, the rope of immortality, or the holy leather, or the blessed stone, or the steel of charity. What nurse would not be ashamed to tell such fables to a child ? Then there are those who practise incantation and exor- 1 Hie celestial mother of the Valentinians. 266 Origen and Celsus. cism with diagrams and mystic numbers. I have seen books with the names of spirits and formulas for spells in the hands of some of their priests. An Egyptian once told me that magic had power on fools and sensualists, but could touch no one who was sound in mind and body. The Christians dream of some antagonist to God — a devil, whom they call Satanus, who thwarted God when He wished to benefit mankind. The Son of God suffered death from Satanus, but they tell us that we are to defy him, and to bear the worst that he can do; Satanus will come again and work miracles, and pretend to be God, but we are not to believe him. The Greeks tell of a war among the gods ; army against army, one led by Saturn and one by Ophiucus ; of challenges and battles ; the vanquished falling into the ocean, the victors reigning in heaven. In the Mysteries we have the rebellion of the Titans, and tiie fables of Typhon, and Horus, and Osiris. The story of the devil plotting against man is stranger than either of these. The Son of God is injured by the devil, and charges us when we are aiBicted to bear it patiently. Why not punish the devil, instead of threatening poor wretches whom he deceives ? Christ must needs suffer, you say, because it was so fore- told. The oracles under whose guidance so many colonies have been founded were nothing, but every word spoken or not spoken in Judaaa must be infallible. Prophets and di- viners are to be found at the present day scattered every- wheie. They are to be met with in temples, and camps, and cities, with crowds gathered about them. "I am God," they say, " or the Son of God, or the Holy Spirit, and I have come because the world is to perish, and you, O men, are like to perish, too, in your iniquities ; but I will save you ; hereafter you will see me coming in the power of heaven ; blessed are those who believe in me now ; the rest I will burn with everlasting fire ; repentance will then be in vain ; only those who now listen shall escape." Then they utter some unintelligible nonsense from which any rogue or block- Origen and Celsus. 267 head can extract whatever meaning pleases him. I have myself spoken with some of these persons, who, when cross- questioned, have confessed that they wei-e impostors. If prophets like these were to foretell that God was to fall sick and die, must God fall sick and die because they say so? What is incredible and unworthy may not be be- lieved, though all mankind go mad and prophesy it. The Jewish prophets, inspired by God, you say, foretold that Christ would come to do tliis and that, and the prophets could not err. God through Moses promised the Israelites temporal prosperity and earthly dominion ; He bade them destroy their enemies, sparing neither old nor young, and threatened them with destruction themselves unless they obeyed ' Him. The Sou of God condemned riches, con- demned ambition ; men were to care no more for food or raiment than tlie ravens or the lilies ; they were to offer the cheek to be smitten. It seems that either Moses was wrong or Christ was wrong ; or are we to suppose that God changed his own mind ? You dream, perhaps, of another and better world, another existence, as in some Eiysian fields, where all riddles will be solved and all evil be put away. You say unless God can be seen in the form of a man, how are we to know Him? How can anything be known, except by the senses? You might see Him, if that was all, in the Greek temples. But your words are tiie words of flesh, not of reasonable men. Then only can you see God when you close the eyes of tlie body and open the eyes of the intellect, and if you need a guide upon the road, avoid the quacks and conjurers who pi'omise to show you ghosts. Put away your vain illusions, your marvellous formulas, your lion and your Amphibius, your God-ass and your celestial door-keepers,* in whose names, poor wretches, you allow yourselves to be persecuted and impaled. Plato says that the Architect and Father of the Universe is not easily found, and when found 1 All allusion to some of the Gnostic heresies. 268 Origen and Celsus. cannot be made known to common minds. Go learn of Plato how truth is sought for by those who are inspired indeed. Hard and narrow is the way tliat leads to light, and few can find it; but through the efforts of the wise we are not left wholly without some glimpse, without some conception, of that awful and eternal being. Lost in the flesh as you are and without pure visions I know not if you can follow me. That wiiich is intelligible is perceived by the mind. That which is visible is perceived by the eye. The spirit apprehends the things of the spirit, tlie eye ap- prehends tiie things of the eye ; and as the sun in this visible Universe is not the eye and is not sight, but is the power which enables the eye to see and enables all sensible things which are the object of vision to be seen, so God is not intellect, and is not spirit, and is not knowledge, but through Him the spirit perceives, the intellect knows; in Him all truth and all objects of knowledge have their being; and He Himself, by some inefTabie agency, is seen above them all. I speak as to men of understanding. It will be well if you can follow me. The spirit you speak of, which you pretend has come down to you from God to teach his mysteries, is the same spirit which has maile these truths known to us. If you cannot comprehend, I bid you be silent. Cover up your ignorance. Call not those blind whose eyes are open, nor those lame who run ; and live as you will in your body, which is the dead part of you. If you must needs have some new doctrine, adopt some illus- trious name, better suited to the dignity of a divine nature. If Hercules and Esculapius do not please you, there was Orpheus. He too died by violence. If Orpheus has been taken by others, there was Anaxarcims, who was beaten to death and mocked at his executioners. " Pound on," he said, "you can pound the sheath of Anaxarchus, himself you cannot pound." The men of science, you may tell me, have appropriated Anaxarchus. Well, then, take Epictetus, who, when his master was wrenching his leg upon the rack. Origm and Celsits. 269 smiled, and said he would break it, and, when he did break it, said, " I told you so.'' Even the sibyl, whose poems you interpolate with your &wn fables, you might have called a daughter of God with a sort of reason. Your own legen- dary heroes would have been more presentable than the one whom you have chosen : your Jonah who was in the whale's belly, or your Daniel in the lions' den. You boast that you have no temples, no altars, no images. The absence of such things is not peculiar to you. The nomad Scythians and the Africans have none. The Per- sians have none. The Persians say the gods are not like men, and tliey will not represent them as men. Heracliius says that prayer to an image is like prayer to a house wall. But you, in condemning images, are inconsistent with your- selves, for you say that man was made in the image of God, The images in the temples you pretend are images of genii. If this be so, and if there be genii, why should not they be adored ? Is not everything directed by God ? Is not God's providence over all ? Angels, genii, heroes, have they not each their own law prescribed by God ? are tliey not minis- tering spirits set over their several provinces according to their degree ? and why, if we adore God, should we not adore those who bear rule under Him ? No man, you say, can serve many masters. This is the language of sedition — of men who would divide themselves from the society of their fellows, and would carry God along with them. A slave cannot serve a second master without wronging the first to whom he belongs. But God can suffer no wrong. God can lose nothing. The inferior spirits are not his rivals, that He can resent the respect whicli we pay to them. In them we worship only some attribute of Him from whom they hold authority, and in saying that one only is Lord you disobey and rebel against Him. Nor do you practise )Our own profession. You have a second Lord yourselves, a man who lived and died a few years ago ; you pretend still that in God"s Son you 270 Origen and Celsus. still worship but one God ; but this is a subtle contrivance that you may give the greater glory to this Son. You say that in your " Dialogus Coelestis," " If the Son of Man is stronger thau God and Lord of God, who else can be Lord of Him who is above God ? " ^ You have a God above the heavens — Father of the son of man, whom you have chosen to worship ; and to this son of man you give the glory of God by pretending that he is stronger than God. You have no outward services, because you prefer to be connected by a secret bond among yourselves. The true God is the common Father of us all. From us He needs nothing. He is good, and in Him is no jealousy or malice. What hurt can His most devoted servants fear from taking part in the public festivals? If the images presented there be idols, they are without power to injure. If they are spirits, they are spirits sent from God, and deserve the honor and ser- vice assigned to them by the laws. Your customs require you to abstain from the flesh of some of the animals which are offered in sacrifice. Be it so. Abstain if you will from the flesh of all animals. Pythagoras did the same. But if, as you pretend, you will not be partakers with genii, are the genii only present when the victims are slain ? The corn and herbs which you eat, the wine you drink, the water, and the very air you breathe, are they not all created by the spirits that are set over them ? Either you must not live in this world at all, or you must offer your thanksgiv- ings and prayers to the beings from whom you receive all tliat you have. These supermundane and ethereal officials may be dangerous if they are neglected or insulted. You are only in danger from them, you say, if you call them by their barbarous names. Y''ou are safe if you keep to Latin and Greek equivalents. You may curse a Zeus or Apollo and strike him in the face, and he takes no notice. Alas, my good people, we, too, can outlaw your spirit by sea and ^ The Dlalogvs Ccelestis was perhaps a Maicionite book. Origen knew nothing of it, and declined to be responsible for it. Origen and Cdsus. 271 land ; we can take you who are his images and chain you and kill you. And your Son of God, or whatever you please to call him, is no less indifferent. We do not learn that those who put him to death suffered anything extraor- dinary. What has befallen since his end to persuade us that your son of man was Son of God? He was sent into the world as God's ambassador. He was killed, his mes- sage perished with him ; and, after all these generations, he still sleeps. He suffered, you say, with his own consent. May not those whom you revile suffer also with their con- sent ? It is well to compare like with like. Is there no evidence for the presence of God's Spirit in the established religion ? Need I speak of the oracles ? the prophecies announced from the shrines ? the revelations in the augu- ries ? the visions of divine beings actually seen ? All the world is full of these things. How many cities have been founded at the bidding of an oracle ? How many rescued from plague and famine ? How many have perished misera- bly when the oracle's commands were neglected ? Pi-inces have flourished or fallen. Childless parents have obtained their wishes. The sick and maimed have recovered health find strength. Blasphemers have gone mad confessing their crimes. Others have killed themselves, or fallen into mortal illness ; some have been slain on the spot by an awful sen- tence out of the shiine. You tell of the eternal torments which await the wicked. Tou say no more than the interpreters of the Mysteries. But the penalties which you pronounce against them, the chiefs of the Mysteries pronounce against you. Why should you be more right than they ? They and you are equally confident in your message ; and they as well as you have their miracles and prophecies. For your message in itself (I do not speak to such of you as are troubled about a bodily resurrection ; with them it is vain to reason), to those among you who believe that the soul or intellect is immortal (intel- lectual spirit, holy or blessed spirit, living spirit, effluence 272 Origen and Oelsus. from incoi-poreal nature celestial and imperishable, name it as }ou please), to tliose wlio believe tliat the wicked will Buffer everlastingly, and that the rigiiteous will enjoy eternal happiness in the presence of God, 1 say that they believe truly and well. Let them liold to this doctrine. May it never be abandoned either by them or any man I Perhaps for all human beings gome penal purgatory is necessary to purify the soul from the passions aqd pollutions by which it has been stained in its connection with the body. Mortals, Em- pedocles tells us, must wander apart from bliss in countless forms for 30,000 years, and are committed to tlie keepers of the prison-house. One, however, of two things : either you must recognize the usages of the commonwealth and respect its ministers, or the commonwealth cannot bear your presence. You must go from us and leave no seed he- liind you, that the trace of you may be blotted off the earth. If you choose to marry and rear children, and eat the fruit of the ground and share in the common interests of life, you must submit to the conditions, although tliey may not be wholly to your taste. All of us liave to bear with things which we could wish otherwise. It is a law of nature, and there is no remedy. You must pay honor to those who are set over you. You must disfiharge the duties of this life until you are released from the bonds of it. You cannot have the benefits of society and refuse to share its oblig^' tions. In some places the religious customs may be extrava- gant and superstitious, and wise men use their judgment as to the credit which they attach to them. But if the Romans were to listen to you, to abolish all their laws and customs, and to worship only your Most High, or what you may please to call Him, you will not pretend that He will come and fight for them and defend them from their ene- mies. According to you. He promised the Jews more thap this, yet he has done little either for them or for yourselves. The Jews were to have ruled the world, and they have not a yard of ground to call their own. You are only safe when Origen and Celsus. 273 you keep concealed. If you are found you are executed. God must never be forgotten either by day or night, either in public or private, either in speech or action. Whatever we do or leave undone, we should have God ever before our minds, but we must obey also the princes and rulers of this world, the powers, whatever they be, which have authority here. I do not say that obedience is without limit. If a servant of God be commanded to do some wrong act or speak an irreverent word, he is bound to disobey. He must bear all torture and all deatli sooner than say or do what God forbids: but if the order be to salute the Sun or sing a hymn to Athene, he does but glorify God the more when he praises God's ministers ; nor is it unlawful to swear by the emperor, for to tiie emperor the world is given in charge, and under him you hold all that you have. A monarch is enthroned upon earth to whom God has committed the sceptre. Refuse to acknowledge him, refuse to serve under him in the state or the army, and he has no choice but to punish you, because if all were to act as you do he would be left alone and unsupported ; the empire would be overrun by the barbarians, and all sound knowledge would be destroyed, your own superstition along with it. You have no fear, you say ; you can face the prospect; you are content to see ruler after ruler perish if only he will lis- ten to you. If the rulers have any prudence they will first make an end with you. Your notion that all the world can be brought to one mind in religion, Asiatic, European, African, Greek, and Barbarian, is the wildest of dreams. It cannot be. The very thought reveals your ignorance. Your duty is to stand by your sovereign, in the field, in the council chamber, wherever he requires your service. Do justly in your place as citizens, and make yourselves worthy members of th.e commonwealth.^ 1 Origen says on this very important point that. Christians will only assist the Emperor with their own weapons. They will put on the armor of God. They will pray for the success of the Imperial armies when the 18 274 Oriyen and Celsus. Such is tlie general bearing of tliis memorable treatise. There must be large gaps in many parts where the connec- tion is broken. The I'onclusion is abrupt. It was, perhaps, a further development of the political aspect of the question, which Origen thought it unnecessary to quote. In places he seems to have misunderstood Celsus, in places to have unconsciously done him injustice. Throughout we do not know where we have the words of Celsus himself, and where a paraphase of what Oiigen thought him to mean. Occasionally where a paragraph appears to be quoted ver- bally, it is unintelligible from want of context, and we are driven to Origen's rejoinders to discover what Celsus is talk- ing about. On the whole, however, the sketch which I have given does, I believe, represent faithfully in a generalized foi-m the argument which obstructed for a century the prog- ress of Christianity. Tiie reply, which was long an arsenal for Christian advocates, is as beautiful as it is voluminous. It is the unfolding of the position of the Christian Church towards the surrounding world in all its simplicity, its inno- cence, and spiritual purity. Good men are not protected from intellectual errors. Their thoughts are occupied with higher subjects, and they attend, perhaps, less than others to merely secular learning. When he is o£E his own ground and attempts to answer Celsus on questions of fact, on science, cause is a just one. The priests of the temples were excused from shedding blood, and conflned themselves to iiitJicession. Christians abstained on tlie same ground to Iteep their hands pure. They were willing to pray for the confusion of the enemies of justice, and by defeating the evil spirits who had caused awar they would benefit the Emperor more than they could do bj' fighting with their hands. Serve under him as legionaries they would not. however he might try to force them. The Fathers were divided on the matter. Tertullian wavers, but inclines to agree with Origen. Many Christians did as a fact serve in the Imperial army. The complaint of Celsus, and Origen's defiant language eighty years after, show, however, that their rule was to abstain; and we need no further explanation of the "persecutions." Liability' to military service is a universal condition of citizenship, and no nation modern or ancient would tolerate a refusal on the plea of conscience. Origen and Celsus. 275 on history, on statesmanship, Origen is a child contending with a giant. In the "True Account" we find the tone and almost the language of the calm, impartial, thougiitful modern European. We find the precise attitude in which a sensible man in our own time would place himself towards any new revelation which might present itself now, pre- tending to be supported by miracles aud interfering with political obligations. Celsus was in advance of his age. He was on an elevation from which he could survey the past and current superstitions, and detect the origin of most of them in ignorance or credulity. Origen replies to iiini from the level of contemporary illusions, from which he was as little free as the least instructed of his catechu- mens. Celsus tells him that "names " are not things, tiiat names are but signs, and that different words in different languages mean the same object : that when religious Greeks speak of Zeus, and Latins of Jupiter, and Persians of Dis, and Jews of Jehovah, they all mean tiie common Father of mankind. Origen answers that this cannot be, because if the formula of the God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob, was properly pronounced, mir- acles were every day notoriously worked by it, while the names of the other gods had no power at all. So through- out his whole argument he assumed that the earth whs full of demons ; that the heathen gods were demons ; that the oracles were inspired by demons ; that madness and disease were possession by demons. The conjurers, whom Celsus and Lucian knew to be charlatans and impostors, were to Origen enchanters who had mnde a compact with Satan or had gained a power over him by magical arts. Christianity was encountering the mystery of evil on its own supernatural platform, and putting to flight with supernatural weapons the legions of hell. Celsus had studied natural history accurately and intelligently. Origen was on the same ground as his contemporaries, and availed himself of popu- lar errors to gain credibility for the Christian miracles. 276 Origen and Celsus. Thus he meets the objection to the virgin birth of Christ by alluding to parthenogenesis among animals, and by assert- ing that the vultures were an acknowledged instance of it. Celsus understood the generation of human legends, and knew their worth or worthlessness. Origen took wiiat he found. He parallels the angel's visit to Joseph with tlie vision wiiich forbade Ariston, Plato's father, to approach his wife till the first child was born. He thought the story worth producing, though he did not pledge himself to a be- lief that it was true. He did not see tliat the readiness of mankind to invent and receive such stories tended rather to suggest in all instances an analogous origin for them in human enthusiasm. To Origen the resurrection was not un- exampied, because Plato says that " Heras, the son of Armi- nins, had returned to life after being twelve days dead," and " many others were known to have risen out of their graves after they had been buried." And when Celsus asks why Christ was seen only by his disciples after his resurrection, Origen answers that after He had spoiled principalities and powers, bis body bad peculiar properties and was only visible to those who were in a proper spiritual condition. Most persons would now admit that Celsus spoke with wise diffidence when he hesitated at the assumption tliat the uni- verse and all that it contained was created solely for the sake of man. Origen is perfectly certain that God had no other object. Sun, moon, and stars, and earth and everything living upon it, were subordinated to man. In man alone, or in reference to man, the creation had its purpose and mean- ing. As to Adam and the story of Paradise, it was an alle- gory. Adam was Adam, and he was also human nature. Allegory was always a resource when other arguments were wanting. The wholesale slaughter of the people of Canaan enjoined npon the Israelites seemed to Celsus inconsistent with the injunction to turn the cheek to the smiter. Origen boldly answers that by the Canaanites were meant the Israelites' own evil dispositions ; the children of Babylon Origen and Celsus. 277 who were to be clashed against the stones, were their own wicked thoughts and inclinations, which they were ordered to tear out and fling from them. A yet bolder flight of his imagination was his escape from diiRculties with the Ark. Tlie dimensions, he said, were wrongly given. The Ark, which was a hundred years in building, was as large as an enormous city. But these illustrations give no true conception of Origen's argument, and on the moral and spiritual side Origen was as completely victorious as Celsus was irresistible on the intel- lectual. Celsus insisted that Christianity was identical in character with a thousand other superstitions. Origen was able to insist on the extraordinary difference, that neither the philosophy of the schools, nor the mysteries, the festi- vals, the rituals of the heathen gods availed to check the impurity of society, or to alleviate the miseries of mankind, and that vice and wretchedness disappeared in every house into which the Gospel found an entrance. This was true ; and it was a truth which outweighed a million-fold the skil- fuUest cavils of the intellect. A new life had come into tlie world ; it was growing like the grain of mustard-seed by its own vital force, and the earth was growing green under its shadow. Such an artjument was unanswerable. No other creed could be pointed to from which any stream was flow- ing of moral regeneration. Celsus taunted the Christians with addressing their message to the ignorant and the miserable. " You cannot change the nature of fallen men," he said. " Help those who are helping themselves, and leave fools and sinners to gather as they sow." Nature, it is true, is inexorable. Nature never pardons, and punishes mistake as harshly as she punishes crime. The law of nature is " woe to the weak," and human society follows nature's foot- steps. Governed by a stern but wholesome instinct, society insists that each individual shall learn his duty for himself, and shall be made to feel by sharp penalties the consequences of his own transgressions. It is so, and it will be so. There 278 Origen and Celsus. is no danger that the world will ever become too merciful. But against this hard enactment there pleads in mitigation the still soft voice of humanity, which in Christianiiy for the first time became an effective power. The strong and successful are not always the good ; the miserable are not always the wicked ; and even for the wicked, pity claims to be heard in mitigation of punishment. Tliey did not make the dispositions which they brought witli them when they were born. Thev did not wholly make the circumstances in which those dispositions were fostered into habits. Com- passion for the weak, the divinest attribute of God, now at length began to control and limit the cruelty of nature ; conscience, accepting another law for itself, has been com- pelled by Christianity to submit to a higher rule of obligation. Christianity abolished the gladiator shows and the fights of men with wild beasts, which turned the spectators into savage beasts themselves. More slowly, but yet surely, Christianity has forbidden the strong to seize the helpless and make them slaves, or to expose cliildren to die lest population should become redundant. The genius of Chris- tianity has covered Europe with Iiospitals for the sick ; has imposed on nations the duty of contending at their own cost against plagues and famine ; has created a new virtue in " charity,'' which was unknown to Aristotle ; and has as- signed the highest place to it among human excellences. Even to the poor sinner, the abandoned profligate, given over as irredeemable by the man of the world, and left to perish, Christianity opened a window of hope ; for the lost sinner there was the possibility of return ; peace, happiness, redemption, recovered purity, were within his reach ; the tyranny of evil might still be broken if he himself would turn from it ; while the virtuous man, the man who with real success was endeavoring to live well, was not left with- out a message, as Celsus supposed. He was told to look into his own painted sepulchre of a heart, to compare him- self at his best with what he knew that he ought to be, and Origen and Celstis. 279 to say, if he dared, that he, too, had no need of a merciful judgment. The address of the "Evangel," the "good news " to the publican and sinner, which called out the scorn of the cultivated Eoman, has introduced a principle into human life which has revolutionized it from base to summit. As it was with humanity, so it was with licentiousness. The " resuri'ection of Christ " was a formula more powerful than the spell of an enchanter to cast out the devils of glut- tony and bestiality. It was the eternal symbol of the death to siu and the living to righteousness. " As Christ died in the body and rose again^" so Christians were bidden to put to death the lusts that were in their flesh, and rise again to purity. Philosophers might lecture in the schools in praise of temperance. Philosophy had become an intellectual play- thing ; it could not so much as expel the devil out of the philosophers themselves, who, if we can believe Lucian, were the most contemptible beings within the circuit of the Empire. Nor had Lucian himself any power of exorcism, or Celsus, or Marcus Aurelius : they had knowledge and integrity ; they had large-minded statesmanship ; they might lead pure lives themselves ; and they had a healthy scorn for the degradation of most of their contemporaries. But they possessed no spell to cast out the vicious self-indulgence of their age. They could suggest no certain fears or hopes as a motive for a better life. They could not reach the enthu- siasm of emotion, which would choose a better life for its own sake, independent of motive. The conscience of the ignorant masses in the Empire was rising in indignation against the depravity of the educated ; and neither able nor much caring to examine the historical details o£ their belief, the disciples of Christianity accepted it in its spiritual com- pleteness, and flung themselves with all their souls into the war with evil. Their teachers were, like themselves, animated by the same emotions, and reasoned from the same principles. 280 Origen and Celsus. They did not parade the critical proofs of this or that fact mentioned in Scripture. They took the facts as they found them, and turned them to a spiritual purpose. The early Fathers were men often of the highest intellect ; but intel- lect takes various forms ; thej' had not studied either human history, or the world outside them, with the eyes of critics ; intellect with them had been poured into the imagination ; they saw, as poets see. the spiritual truth underlying the actual, of which the actual is no more than a shell. It was not for them to oppress their hearers with labored volumes of evidence. " Believe," they said ; " faitli alone will save you ;" and Origen justly defended the bold position. Ante- cedent belief is the only basis possible for action of any kind. If we wait till we have considered all possibilities, before and behind, till we have reflected on the fallibility of our faculties, and allowed for the effect of emotion or enthusiasm in biassing our judgment, life will be gone before we have begun to live. " Believe," in substance said Origen himself, " that sin is death, that to forsake sin is the resur- rection to life. For the rest, the world is full of evil spirits, trying everywhere to mislead or injure you ; but if there are devils there are angels ; if there are enchanters there are Christ and the saints.'' Christianity took up freely into itself the popular theories, the popular modes of thouglit, and assimilated them to its own likeness, as the growing oak takes in carbon through its leaves and converts it into fibre. It was not a new knowledge imparted authoritatively by men of science. It was the organic development of a new conviction which was taking hold of the hearts of mankind. Have we, then, no security that the facts of Scripture history are literally and precisely true? The question is less important than it seems. The story of Newton and the apple may be a legend. Yet none the less Newton discovered and revealed the true law of gravitation. A trtie religion, it cannot be too often repeated, is not a Origen and Celsus. 281 history, but a declaration of the present relation which exists at all times between God and man. So certainly the Fathers of the Church felt, or they would not have treated Scripture facts witli the freedom of allegoric inter- pretation which we uniformly find in them. The "Iliad" is in form a history, the play of "Hamlet" is in form a history, and doubtless some historical facts lay at the basis of both one and the other. But the exact incidents which happened in the Troad or at Elsinore are irrelevant to the truth of the " Iliad " or the truth of « Hamlet." History is true or false, as it corresponds, or does not cor- respond, to facts which occurred once, and never literally repeat themselves. A play or a poem is true if it contains a true picture of human nature ; and it embodies hot a single order of facts, or the inferences from a single order of facts, but the faithful observation of all human phe- nomena. Truth is thus of more kinds than oue ; and the truth which is of most importance to mankind is not the truth of a particular fact which occurred once in time, but the truth of the eternal facts of the constitution of the universe, the same yesterday, to-day, and forever. A CAGLIOSTRO OF THE SECOND CENTUKY. In the Acts of the Apostles we meet with a class of per- spns whose features have in our own times become again familiar to us — quacks and conjurers professing to be in communication with the spiritual world, and regarded with curiosity and interest by serious men high in rank and au- thority. Sergius Paulus was craving for any liglit which could be given to him, and in default of better teaching had listened to Elymas tlie Sorcerer. Simon Magus, if we may credit Catholic tradition, was in favor at the Imperial Court of Rome, wlit-re lie matched his power against St. Peter's, and was defeated only because God was stronger than the devil. The '• curious aits " of these people were regarded both by Christian and heathen as a real mastery of a supernatural secret ; and in the hunger for information about the great mystery with which the whole society was possessed, they rose, many of them, into positions of extra- ordinary influence and consequence. Asia Minor seems to liave been their chief breeding ground, where Eastern magic came in contact with Greek civilization, and impos- ture was able to disguise itself in the phrases of philosophy. Apollonius of Tyana was the most remarkable of these adventurers. His life, unfortunately, has been written by believers in his pretensions ; and we have no knowledge of what he looked like to cool observers. The Apollonius of Philostratns is a heathen saviour, who claimed a com- mission from heaven to teach a pure and reformed relig- ion, and in attestation of his authority went about healing the sick, raising dead men to life, casting out devils, and A Caglioitro of the Second Century. 283 prophesying future events which came afterwards to pass. The interesting fact about Apollonius is the extensive recognition which he obtained, and the ease with which his pretensions found acceptance in the existing condition of the popular mind. Out off^he legends of him little can be gathered, save the barest outline of his history. He was born four years before the Christian era in Tyana, a city of Cappadocia. His parents sent him to be educated at Tarsus in Cilicia, a place of considerable wealth and repute, and he must have been about beginning his studies there when St. Paul as a little boy was first running about the streets. The life in Tarsus being too luxurious for Apollo- nius's aspirations, he became a water-drinker and a vege- tarian, and betook himself as a recluse to the temple of JEsculapius at Mgx. JEsculapius, as the god of healing, and therefore the most piactically useful, had become the most popular of the heathen divinities. He alone of them was supposed to remain beneficently active, and even to appear at times in visible form in sick-rooms and by sick- beds. Apollonius's devotion to ^soulapius means that he studied medicine. On the death of his father he divided his property among the poor, and after five years of retire- ment he travelled as far as India in search of knowledge. He discoursed with learned Brahmins there, and came home with enlightened ideas, and with some skill in the arts of the Indian jugglers. With these two possessions he begun his career as a teacher in the lioman Empire. He preached his new religion, and he worked miracles to in- duce people to believe in him. He was at Rome in Nero's time, when Simon Magus and St. Peter are said to have been there. Perhaps tradition has confused Apollonius with Simon Magus, or Simon Magus with Apollonius. In the convulsions which followed Nero's murder, being then an old man, he attached himself to Vespasian in P^gypt. Vespasian, who was not without his superstitions, and him- self had been once persuaded to work a miracle, is said to 284 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. have looked kindly on him and patronized him, and Apollo- iiius blossomed out into glory as the spiritual adviser of the Vespasian dynasty. The cruelties of Doraician estranged him. He was accused of conspiring with Nerva, and of having sacrificed a child to bribe the gods in Nerva's in- terest. He was even charged with having pretended to be a god himself. He was arraigned, convicted, and was about to suffer, when he vanished out of the hands of the Roman police, to reappear at Elphesus, where he soon after died. Clearly enough, we are off the ground of history in much of this. If Apollouius died at Ephesus in Nerva's time, he was a hundred years old at least, and must have been a contemporary and neighbor of St. John, who is supposed to have been writing his Gospel in the same city about that very time. However that may be, it is certain that after his death a temple was raised to Apollonius at the place of his birth, and Tyana became a privileged city. Similar honors were assigned elsewhere to him as an evidence of the facility and completeness with which he had gained credit for his pretended divine commission. The truth about him is probably that he was a physician, and had obtained some real knowledge of the methods of curing diseases. In India, besides philosophy and juggling, he may have learnt to practise what is now called animal magnetism ; and find- ing that he had a real power on the nervous system of hys- terical patients, the nature of which he did not understand, he may have himself believed it to be supernatural. With these arts he succeeded in persuading his countrymen that he was " some great one," "a great power of God ; " and both in life and death, in an ago when the traditionary re- ligion was grown incredible, and the human race was crav- ing for a new revelation, Apollonius of Tyana, among many others, was looked upon through a large part of the Roman Empire as an emanation of the Divine nature. Such A Cagliostro of the Second Century. 285 periods are the opportunities of false prophets. Mankind when they grow enthusiastic mistake their hopes and im- aginations for evidence of truth, and run like sheep after every new pretender who professes to hold the key of the mystery which they are so passionately anxious to pene- trate. Our present business, however, is not with the prophet of Tyana. Apollonius left a school of esoteric disciples behind him, with one of whom we are fortunately able to form a closer acquaintance. Apollonius we see through a mist of illusion. Alexander of Abonotichus we are able to look at with the eyes of the cleverest man who was alive on this planet in the second century. With the help of Lucian's portrait of Alexander we can discern, perhaps, the lineaments of Apollonius himself. We can see, at any rate, what these workers of miracles really were, as well as the nature of the element in which they made their con- quests, at the side of, and in open rivalry with, the teachers of Christianity. A word first about Lucian himself. At the Christian era, and immediately after it, the Asiatic provinces of the Empire were singularly productive of eminent men. The same intercourse of Eastern and Western civilization which produced the magicians was generating in all directions an active intellectual fermentation. The "disciples" were " called Christians first at Antioch.'' It was in Asia Minor that St. Paul first established a .Gentile Church. There sprang up the multitude of heresies out of conflict with which the Christian creeds shaped themselves. And by the side of those who were constructing a positive faith were found others, who were watching the phenomena round them with an anxious but severe scepticism, unable themselves to find truth in the agitating speculations which were distracting everybody that came near them, but with a clear eye to distinguish knaves and impostors, and a reso- lution as honorable as St. Paul's to fight with and expose 286 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. falsehood wherever they encountered it. Among these the most admiraV)le was the satirist, artist, man of letters, the much-spoken-of and little-studied Lucian, the most gifted and perhaps the puiest-hearted thinker outside the Church who was produced under the Roman Empire. He was born at Samosata.on the Euphrates about the year 120. He was intended for a sculptor, but his quick discursive in- tellect led him into a wider field, and he spent his life as a critic of the spiritual phenomena of his age. To Chris- tianity he paid little attention. To him it appeared but as one of the many phases of belief which were showing them- selves among the ignorant and uneducated. But it was harmless, and he did not quarrel with it. He belonged to the small circle of observers who looked on such things with the eyes of men of science. Cool-headed, and with an honest hatred of lies, he ridiculed the impious theology of the established pagan religion ; with the same instinct he attacked the charlatans who came, like Apollonius, pretend- ing to a Divine commission. He was doing the Church's work when he seemed most distant from it, and was strug- gling against illusions peculiarly seductive to the class of minds to whom the Church particularly addressed itself. Thus to Lucian we are indebted for cross lights upon the history of times which show us how and why at that par- ticular period Christianity was able to establish itself. His scientific contemporaries were more antagonistic to it than himself. The Celsus against whom Origen wrote his great defence was probably Lucian's intimate friend. But if Christianity was incredible and offensive to them, men like Apollonius of Tyana were infinitely more offensive. Chris- tianity was at most a delusion. Apollonius of Tyana they hated as a quack and a scoundrel. Besides the treatise which Origen answered, Celsus wrote a book against the magicians. Lucian speaks of Apollonius in a letter to Cel- sus as if they were both agreed about the character of the prophet of Tyana, and had this book survived we should A Oagliostro of the Second Century. 287 have perhaps found a second picture there of Apollonius, which would have made impossible the rash parallels which have been attempted in modern times. The companion picture of Alexander of Abonotichus, by Lucian himself, happily remains. When the world was bowing down be- fore this extraordinary rascal, Lucian traced out his his- tory, and risked his own life in trying to explode the im- posture. Though human folly proved too strong, and Alexander died like Apollonius, with the supernatural au- reole about him, Lucian, at the express desire of Celsus, placed on record a minute account of the man, lucid to the smallest detail. He describes him as a servant of the devil, in the most modern sense of the word — not of the prince of the power of the air, as a Cbristian Father would have described him, with evil genii at his bidding, but of the devil of lying and imposture with whom nowadays we are so sadly fao»liar. He commences with an apology for touch- ing so base a subject : he undertakes it only at his friend's request. Nor can he tell the entire story. Alexander of Abonotichus was as great in rascaldom as Alexander of Miicedon in war and politics. His exploits would (ill large volumes, and the most which Lucian could do was to select a few basketfuls from the duiigheap and offer them as specimens. Even thus much he feels a certain shame in attempting. If the wretch had received his true deserts, he would have been torn in pieces by apes and foxes in the arena, and the very name of him would have been blotted out of memory. Biographies, however, had been written, and had given pleasure, of distinguished highway- men ; and an account of a man who had plundered, not a small district, but the whole Roman Empire, might not be without its uses. With these few words of contemptuous preface Lucian tells his story ; and in a form still more abridged we now offer it to our readers. Abonotichus was a small coast town on the south shore 288 A Caglioitro of the Second Century. of the Black Sea, a few miles west of Sinope. At this place, at the beginning of the second centurj', the future prophet was brought into the woild. His parents were in a humble rank of life. The boy was of unusual beauty; and having no inclination to woi-k and a very strong in- clination for pleasure, he turned his advantages to abomi- nable account. By and by he was taken up by a doctor who had been one of Apollonius's disciples. The old villain had learnt his master's arts. He understood medicine, could cure stomachaches and headaches, set a limb, or assist at a lying-in. But besides his legitimate capabilities, he had set up for a magician. He dealt in spells and love- charms ; he could find treiisures with a divining rod, dis- cover lost deeds and wills, provide heirs for disputed in- heritances, and, when well paid for it, he knew how to mix a poison. In these arts the young Alexander became an apt pupil, and was useful as a sort of famulus. He learnt Apollonius's traditionary secrets, and at the age of twenty, when his master died, he was in a condition to practise on his own account. He was now thrown on the world to shift for himself. But his spirits were light, and his confidence in himself was boundless : as long as there were fools with money in their pockets, he could have a well-founded hope of transferring part of it to his own. A provincial town was too small a theatre of operations. He set off for Byzantium, the great mart of ancient commerce, which was thronged with mer- chants from all parts of the world. Like seeks like. At Byzantium, Alexander made acquaintance with a vagabond named Cocconas, a fellow who gained a living by foretell- ing the winners at games and races, lounging in the betting rings, and gambling with idle young gentlemen. By this means he found entrance into what was called society. Al- exander was more beautiful as a man than as a boy. Coc- conas introduced Jiira to a rich Macedonian lady, who was spending the season in the city. The lady fell in love with A Cagliostro of the Second Century. 289 him, and, on her return to her country seat at Pella, car- ried Alexander and his friend along with her. This was very well for a time ; but the situation, perhaps, had its drawbacks. Aspiring ambition is not easily satisfied ; and the young heart began to sigli for a larger sphere. In the midst of pleasure he had an eye for business. In Macedonia, and especially about Pella, there was at this time a great number of large harmless snakes. They came into the houses, where they were useful in keeping down rats and mice ; they let the children play with them ; they crept into beds at night, and were never interfered with. From this local peculiarity the story, perhaps, originated of the miraculous birth of Alexander the Great. It occurred to the two adventurers that something might be made of one of these serpents. They bought a very handsome speci- men, and soon after they left Pella, taking it with them. For a while they lounged about together, carrying on Cocconas's old trade, and expanding it into fortune-telling. Fools, they observed, were always craving to know the future, and would listen to any one who pretended to see into it. In this way they made much money, and they found the art so easy that their views went higher. They proposed to set up an oracular shrine of their own, which would take the place of Delphi and Delos. The pytho- nesses on the old-established tripods were growing silent. Apollo, it seemed, was tired of attending them, and inquir- ers were often sent away unsatisfied. There was clearly a want in the world, and Alexander and his friend thought they saw their way towards supplying it. The loss of oracles wiis not the whole of the misfortune. The world was beginning to feel that it had even lost God. The Greek mythology had grown incredible. The Epi- cureans were saying that there was no such thing as Provi- dence, and never had been. The majority of people were still of a different opinion ; but they were uneasy, and were feeling very generally indeed that if gods there were, they 19 290 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. ought to make their existence better known. Here was an opportunity, not only of making a fortune, but of vindi- cating the great principles of religion and becoming bene- factors of humanity. They decided to try. Sleight of hand and cunning might succeed when philosophy had failed. Was it said there were no gods ? They would produce a god, a real visible god, that men could feel and handle, that would itself speak and give out oracles, and so silence forever the wicked un- believers. So far they saw their way. The next question was, the place where the god was to appear. Cocconas was for Chalcedon, on the Asiatic side of the Bosphorus. It was a busy town, almost as full of merchants as Byzan- tium, the population all engaged with speculation, and money in any quantity to be made there. This was good as far as it went. But Chalcedon was too much in the light. The pagan gods, as the shrewder Alexander knew, were not fond of commercial cities. Christianiiy might thrive there ; but caves, mountains, and woods, remote isl- ands, retired provincial villages, suited better with Apollo and ^sculapius. Traders' wits were sharpened with busi- ness, and they might be unpleasantly curious. The simple inhabitants of the interior, Phrj'gians and Bithynians, Gala- tians and Cappadocians, would be an easier prey where a reputation had first to be created — and success depended upon a favorable beginning. At his own Abonotichus, he told Cocconas that a man had only to appear with a fife and drum before him, and clashing a pair of cymbals, and the whole population would be on their knees before him. The better judgment of Alexander carried the day. Abonotichus itself was decided on as the theatre of opera- tions. Cocconas, however, was allowed to introduce Chal- cedon into the first act of the drama. .3Ssculapius, the best believed in of the surviving divinities, was the god who was to be incarnated. Joe Smith must have read Lucian's story, and have taken a hint from it. In the temple of A Cagliostro of the Second Century. 291 Apollo at Clialcedon the bold adventurers buried some brass plates, bearing an inscription that Apollo and ^scu- lapius were about to visit Pontus, and that jEsculapius would appear at, Aboiiotichus in a bodily form. The plates were conveniently discovered, and became the talk of the bazaars. Merchants going and coming spread the story. Asia Minor was excited, as well it might be. At the favored Abonotichus the delighted people resolved to build a temple to receive the god at his coming, and they set to work at once, clearing the ground for the foundations. The train being thus well laid, Alexander had no further need of a companion. Cocconas was a vulgar type of rogue, unfit for the decorous hypocrisies which were now to be acted. He was left behind on some pretext at Chalcedon, where he died, it was said from a snake-bite, and so drops out of sight. The supreme performer returned, with the field to himself, to his native town. Lucian describes him as he then appeared : tall, majestic, extremely handsome, hair long and flowing, complexion fair, a moderate beard, partly his own and partly false, but the imitation excellent, eyes large and lustrous, and a voice sweet and limpid. As to his character, says Lucian, " God grant that I may never meet with such another. His cunning was wonderful, his dexterily matchless. His eagerness for knowledge, his ca- pacity for learning, and power of memory were equally ex- traordinary." The simple citizens of Abonotichus, on the watch al- ready for the coming of a god among them, had no chance against so capable a villain. They had not seen him since the wonderful days of his boyhood, when he had been known as the famulus of an old wizard. He now present- ed himself among them, his locks wildly streaming, in a purple tunic, with a white cloak thrown over it. In his hand he bore a falchion like that with which Peiseus had slain the Gorgon. He chanted a doggerel of Alexandrian metaphysics, with monads and triads, pentads and decads, 292 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. playing in anagrams upon his own name. He had learnt from an oracle, he said, that Perseus was his mother's an- cestor, and that a wonderful destiny had been foretold for him. He rolled liis beautiful soft eyes. With the help of soap-wort he foamed at the mouth as if possessed. The poor people had known his mother, and had no conception of lier illustrious lineage. But there was no disputing with an oracle. What an oracle said must be true. He was re- ceived with an ovation, all the town bowing down before him, and he then prepared for bis next step. The snake throughout the East was the symbol of knowledge and immortality. The serpent with his tail in his mouth represented the circle of eternity. The serpent in annually shedding its skin was supposed to re- new its life forever. A sect even of Gnostic Christians were serpent-worshippers. From the time of the brazen serpent in the wilderness, it was the special emblem of the art of healing ; and if the divine physician ever appeared on earth in visible shape, a snake's was the form which he might be expected to assume. The snake which had been bought at Pella was now to be applied to its purpose. The monster, for it was of enor- mous size, had accompanied Alexander through his subse- quent adventures. It had become so tame that it would coil about his body, and remain in any position which he desired. He had made a human face out of linen for it, which he had painted with extreme ingenuity. The mouth would open and shut by an arrangement of horsehair. The blark forked tongue shot in and out, and the creature had grown accustomed to its mask and wore it without objection. A full-grown divinity being thus ready at hand, the in- tending prophet next furnished himself with the egg of a goose, opened it, cleared out tlie contents, and placed inside a small embryo snake just born. This done, he filled the cracks and smoothed them over with wax and white lead, .^scuiupius's temple was meanwhile making progress. The A CaglioBtro of the Second Century. 293 foundations had been dug, and there were pits and holes, which a recent rain had filled with water. In one of these muddy pools Alexander concealed his egg, as he had done the plates at Chalcedon, and the next morning he rushed into the market-place in a state of frenzy, almost naked, a girdle of gold tissue about liis waist, hair streaming, eyes flashing, mouth foaming, and the Perseus falchion wheeling about his head. The crowd collected, at the sight of him, frantic as himself. He sprang upon some mound or bench. " lilessed," he cried, " be this town of Ahonotichus, and blessed be they that dwell in it! This day the prophecy is fulfilled, and God is coming to take his place among us.'' The entire population was out, old and young, men and women, quivering with hope and emotion. Alexander made an oration in an unknown tongue ; some said it was Hebrew, some Phcsnician, all agreed that it was inspired. The only words articulately heard were the names of Apollo and j^culapius. When he had done he set up the familiar Psalm of the Sun God, and moved, with the crowd singing in chorus behind him, to the site of the temple. He stepped into the water, offered a prayer to JEsculiipius, and then, a^king for a bowl, he scooped his egg out of the mud. " ^sculapius is here,'' he said, holding.it for a moment in tlie hollow of his hand. And then, with every eye fixed on him in the intensity of expectation, he broke it. The tiny creature twisted about his fingers. " It moves, it moves 1 " the people cried in ecstasy. Not a question was asked. To donlit would have been impious. They shouted. They blessed the gods. They blessed themselves for the glory which they had witnessed. Health, wealth, all pleasant things which the god cnuld give, tliey saw raining on the happy Ahonotichus. Alexander swept back to his house, bearing the divinity in his bosom, the awe-struck people following. For a few days there was a pause, while the tale of what bad happened spread along the shores of the 294 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. Black Sea. Then on foot, on mules, in carts, in boats, multitudes flocked in from all directions to the birthjilace of ^scui:ipius. The roads were choked with them ; the town overflowed with them. " They had the forms of men," as Lucian says, " but they were as sheep in all be- sides, heads and hearts empty alike." Alexander was ready for their reception. He had erected a booth or tabernacle, with a door at each end and a railed passage leading from one door to the other. Behind the rail, on a couch, in a sul)- dued liglit, the prophet sat, visible to every one, the snake from Pella wreathed about his neck, the coils glittering amidst the folds of his dress, the tail playing on the ground. The head was concealed ; but occasionally the prophet raised his arm, and then appeared the awful face, the muuth mov- ing, the tongue darting in and out. There it was, the ver- itable traditionary serpent with the human counteuance which appears in the mediaeval pictures of the Temptation and tlie Fall. The pi'ophet told the spectators that into this mysteri- ous being the embryo that was found in the egg had de- veloped in a few days. The place was dark ; the crowd which was pressing to be adniitted was enormous. The stream of worshippers passed quickly from door to door. They could but look and give place to otliers. But a single glance was enough for minds disposed to believe. The ra- pidity of the creature's growth, so far from exciting sus- picion, was only a fresh evidence of its miraculous nature. The first exhibition was so successful that others followed. The first visitors had been chiefly the poor; but as the fame of the appearance spread, the higher classes caught the infection. Men of fortune came with rich offerings ; and so confident was Alexander in their folly that those who gave most liberally were allowed to touch the scales and to look steadily at the moving mouth. So well the trick was done that Lucian says, " Epicurus himself would have been taken in." " Nothing could save a man but a A Cagliostro of the Second Century, 295 mind with the firmness of adamant, and fortified by a scientific conviction that the thing which he supposed him- self to see was a physical impossibility." The wonder was still imperfect. Tlie divinity was there, but as yet he. had not spoken. The excitement, however, grew and spread. All Asia Minor was caught with it. The old stories were true, tlien. There were gods, after all, and the wicked philosophers were wrong. Heavy hearts were lifted up again. From lip to lip the blessed message flew ; over Galatia, over Bithynia, away across the Bos- phorus, into Thrace and Macedonia. A god, a real one, had been born at Abouotichus, with a serpent's body and the face of a man. Pictures were taken of him. Images were made in brass or silver and circulated in thousands. At length it was announced that the lips had given an articulate sound. " I am Glycon, the sweet one," the creature had said, " the third in descent from Zeus, and the light of the world." The temple was now finished. Proper accommodation had been provided for -^sculapius and his prophet priest; and a public announcement was made that the god, for a fit consideration, would answer any questions which might be put to him. There was a doubt at first about the tariff. Amphilochus, who had migrated from Thebes to a shrine in Cilicia, and had been prophesying there for ten centuries, charged two obols, or three pence, for each oracle ; but money had fallen in value, and answers directly from a god were in themselves of higher worth, ^sculapius, or Alex- ander for him, demanded eight obols, or a shilling. Days and hours were fixed when inquirers could be received. They were expected to send in their names beforehand, and to write their questions on a paper or parchment, which they might seal up in any way that they pleased. Alex- ander received the packets from their hands, and after a day, or sometimes two days, restored them with the answers to the questio.n,s attached. 296 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. People came, of course, in thousands. The seals being apparently unbroken, the mere fact that an answer was given of some kind predisposed them to be satisfied with it. Either a heated knife-blade had been passed under the wax, or a cast of the impression was taken in coUyrium and a new seal was manufactured. The obvious explanation oc- curred to no one. People in search of the miraculous never like to be disappointed. Eitlier they themselves betray their secrets, or they ask questions so foolish that it cannot be known whether the answer is true or false. Most of the inquirers came to consult ^sculapius about their health, and Alexander knew medicine enough to be able generally to read in their faces what was the matter with them. Thus they were easily satisfied, and went away as convinced as when they arrived. The names being given in beforehand, private information was easily obtained fi'om slaves or com- panions. Shrewd guesses were miracles, when they were correct, and one success outweighed a hundred failures. In cases of difficulty the oracular method was always in re- serve, with the Mmbiguities of magniloquent nonsense. The real strength of Alexander was in his professional skill, which usually was in itself all-sufficient. He had a special quack remedy of his own, which he prescribed as a panacea, a harmless plaster made out of goat's fat. To aspiring pol- iticians, )'oung lovers, or heirs expectant, he replied that the fates were undecided, and that the event depended on the will of -Jlsculapius and the intercessions of his prophet. Never was audacity greater or more splendidly rewarded. The gold ingots sent to Delphi were as nothing compared to the treasures which streamed into Abonotichus. Each question was separately paid for, and ten or fifteen were not enough for the curiosity of single visitors. The work soon ou'grew the strength of a single mun. The prophet had an army of disciples, who were munificently paid. They were employed, some as servants, some as spies, oracle manufacturers, secretaries, keepers of seals, or interpreters A Cagliostro of the Second Century. 297 of the various Asiatic dialects. Each applicant received his answer in his own tongue, to his overwhelming admira- tion. Success brought fresh ambitions with it. Emissaries were dispersed through the Empire spreading the fame of the new prophet ; instigating fools to consult the oracle, and letting Alexander know who they were and what they wanted. If a slave had run away, if a will could not be found, if a treasure had been secreted, if a robbery was un- discovered, Alexander became the universal resource. The air was full of miracles. The sick were healed. The dead were raised to life, or were reported and were believed to have been raised, which came to the same thing. To be- lieve was a duty, to doubt was a sin. A god had come on earth to save a world which was perishing in skepticism. Simple hearts were bounding with gratitude ; and no devo- tion could be too extreme, and no expres.sion of it in the form of offerings too extravagant, ^sculapius might have built a throne of gold for himself out of the pious contribu- tions of the faithful. Being a god, he was personally dis- interested ; "gold and silver," he said through the oracle, " were nothing to him ; he commanded only that his servant the prophet should receive the honors due to him." High favor such as had fallen upon Alexander could not be enjoyed without some drawbacks. The world believed, but an envious minority remained incredulous, and wliis- pered that the prophet was a charlatan. The men of sci- ence persisted that miracles were against nature, and that a professing worker of miracles was necessarily a rogue. The Christians, to whom Lucian does full justice in the matter, regarded Alexander as a missionary of the devil, and ab- hoiTed both him and his works. Combinations were formed to expose him. Traps were cleverly laid for him, into which all his adroitness could not save him from occasionally fall- ing. But he had contrived to entangle his personal credit in the great spiritual questions which were agitating man- kind, and to enlist in his interest the pious side of pagan- 298 A (Jagliostro of the Second Century. ism. The schools of philosophy were divided about him. The respectable sects, Platonists, Stoics, and Pythagoreans, who believed iu a spiritual system underlying the sensible, saw in the manifestation at Abonotichus a revelation in har- mony with their theories. If they did not wholly believe, they looked at it as a phenomenon useful to an age which was denying the supernatural. Alexander, quick to catch at the prevailing influences, flattered the philosophei's in turn. Pythagoras was made a saint in his calendar. He spoke of Pythagoras as the greatest of the ancient sages. Ho claimed to represent him ; at length he let it be known privately that he was Pythagoras. He gilt his thigh, and the yellow lustre was allowed to be seen. The wise man of Samos was again present unrecognized, like Apollo among the herdsmen of Adraetus. 'J'he philosophers of the second centuiy, if Lucian can be believed, were not a lofty set of beings. They professed sulilime doctrines, but the doctrines had little effect on their lives, and the different schools hated one another with genu- ine sectarian intensity. The Pythagoreans were little bet- ter than their rivals, but their teaching was more respecta- ble. They insisted that men had souls as well as bodies. They believed in immortality and future retribution, and they had the sympathies with them of the decent part of society. Alexander's instinct led him to them as the best friends he could have ; and they in turn were ready to play into his hands in their own interests. By their mystical theories they were the natural victims of illusion. Opinions adopted out of superstition or emotion cannot be encoun- tei-ed by reason. They are like epidemic diseases which seize and subdue the mental constitution. They yield only when they have spent their force, and are superseded by other beliefs of an analogous kind. The spiritual world is ruled by homoeopathy, and one disorder is only cured by a second and a similar one. A Cagliostro of the Second Century, 299 Thus supported, therefore, Pythagoras Alexander replied to attempts at exposure by open defiance. Pontus, he said, was full of blaspheming atheists and Christians ; ^scula- pius was displeased that, after he had condescended to come among his people, such wretches should be iiiiy longer toler- ated ; and he demanded that they should be stoned out of the province. A pious inquirer was set to ask after the soul of Epicurus. JEsculapius answered that Epicurus was in hell, lying in filth and in chains of lead. The Pythago- reans clapped their hands. Hell, they had always said, was the proper place for him ; and in hell he was ; the oracle had declared it. It is very interesting to find two classes of men, gen- erally supposed to be so antagonistic as the men of science and the Christians, standing alone together against the world as the opponents of a lying scoundrel. The explana- tion of their union was that each of them had hold of a side of real truth, while the respectable world was given over to shadows. The Epicureans understood the laws of nature and the principles of evidence. The Christians had a new ideal of human life and duty in them, which was to regenerate the whole race of mankind. It was thus fit and right that they should work together against a wretch who understood nothing but human folly and the art of playing upon it, and against the gulls and idiots who wei-e ready to swallow any absurdity which surprised or flattered them. The Epicureans were Alexander's most dangerous ene- mies ; for they had friends in the higher circles of society. Amestris, between Abonotichus and the Bosphorus, was the seat of the provincial administration. Lepidus, the Roman proprietor, was a man of sense and culture. The town took its intellectual tone from him, and was unfavorable to the prophet's pretensions. Ingenious tricks had been played upon him from that quarter with too much success; and he had been driven to announce that for the future no inquiries sent from Amestris would be entertained. Some 300 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. mockeries had followed. Alexander could not afford to let the public enthusiasm cool, and mistakes for the future must be avoided. JEsculapius had hitherto communicated with his worshippers in writing. When he uttered sounds, it was in private to the prophet. To silence doubt, the ser- pent was now to be heard directly speaking. A tube was fitted, through which articulate noises could be made to issue from the snake's mouth with the help of a confederate beliind the curtain. Select visitors only were admitted to this especially sacred performance, and a high price had to be paid for it. But the experiment was tried with perfect success ; and the method was found to have its conveniences. The word-of-mouth oracles were taken down and were given afterwards to the world; but if mistakes had been made, they could be altei-ed before publication. An accident of the kind happened shortly after, which might have been disastrous if the original practice had been followed, but which Alexander was able to turn into a brilliant success. Severian, a Roman general, had been sent by the Em- pei'or Verus to invade Armenia. He called at Abonoti- chus on his way, to learn if he was likely to succeed, and ^sculapius encouraged him with his own lips in bad Homeric verse. He had told Severian that he would sub- due the Armenians, and return in glory to Eome with the bay wreath on his temples and wearing the golden circlet of Apollo. Severian, whether he believed ^sculapius or not, went his way, lost his army, and was himself killed. The oracle was immediately reversed. The line which appeared in the published record was : " Go not against the Armenians, where death and disaster await thee." Thus out of " the nettle danger " Alexander " had plucked the Hower safety." The death of Severian was explained by his neglect or defiance of the warning. In another way, too, he showed his prudence. He made friends at the rival shrines. Monopolies, he knew, were odious and dangerous. If .^sculapius spoke through him, Apollo spoke now and A Cagliostro of the Second Century. 301 then elsewhere. He would sometimes tell a patient that he had no message for him, and that he must go for advice to Claros or to the cave of the Branchidas. Thus he continued to baffle his detractors, and to rise from glory to glory. His fame reached the Imperial Coui-t, and to consult Alexander became the fashion in high Roman society. Ladies of ranii, men of business, intrigu- ing generals or senators, took into their counsels tlie prophet of Abonotichus. Some who had perilous political schemes on hand were rash enough to commit their secrets to paper, and to send them, under the protection of their seals, for the opinion of j3SscuIapius. The prophet, when he discovered matter of this kind, kept the packets by him without returning them. He thus held the writers in his power, and made them feel that their lives were in his hands. And there were others in high position, men of thouglit who were waiting for some kind of revelation, that sought him out from purer motives. Rutilian, a senator, in favor with the Emperor, a man of ability, who had passed his life in the public service, and still held an important office, adopted Alexander for his spiritual father. Rutilian was a Pythagorean of most devout temperament, assiduous in prayers to the Invisible Being or Beings of whose exist- ence he was assured. When he heard that ^sculapius had come into the world, he had already a predisposition to be- lieve, and was prevented only by public duties from flying to learn if the news was true. He could not go to Poiitus himself, but he sent friends on whom he could rely, and whose temperament resembled his own. The majestic ap- pearance of the prophet, the inspired eyes, the ricti, sweet voice, awed them into immediate conviction. They were shown wonders ; but tliey had believed before they had seen, and they returned to Rome to exaggerate what they had witnessed. Rutilian, receiving their i-eport into his own eager imagination, brought it out of the crucible again 302 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. transfigured yet more gloriously. He was a man of known piety and veracity, incapable of conscious falsehood, true and just in all liis dealings. Astonished Rome could not yet wholly surrender itself. Officers of the imperial house- hold hastened over to see with their own eyes. It had not occurred to them that they might see things which they could not explain, yet that what they saw might be no more than a trick. Men without scientific training who trust their own judgment in such matters are the natural prey of charlatans. These gentlemen came to Abonotichus. They were received with the highest honors. Alexander displayed his miracles to them, made them handsome pres- ents, and sent them home open-mouthed to glorify ^-;cu- lapius and his prophet in the fullest conlidence that I hey were speakijig nothing but the truth. Eutiiian was tri- umphant. He was now either relieved from office, or he obtained leave of absence, and at last was able to throw himself in person at the apostle's feet. He was sixty years old at the time when the acquaintance began. His wife was dead, and he had one only son. The first question which he asked Alexander was about his boy's education. Alexander told him that his teachers were to be Pythagoras and Homer. The child died, and went to his tutors in Hades ; and the prophet at the first step had given a con- vincing proof of his inspiration. Lucian, in his contempt of folly, half pardons Alexander when such a man as Eutiiian was so eager to be his dupe. The new disciple, being a Pythagorean, believe^J^rn-eexistence. He asked thiough what personalities h^moA himself passed already. Alexander told him that he had been no less a person tlian Achilles. After Achilles he had been Menauder, and when his present life was over he was to become immortal, and live thenceforward as a sunbeam. Eutiiian believed it alL No absurdity was too monstrous for iiim ; while he on his part was infinitely useful to Alexander. Few skeptics were hardy enough thenceforward to question the character of the friend of the Emperor's favorite. A Caglioitro of the Second Century. 803 Among his female adorers or connections, of whom Alexander had as many as Brigham Young, there was a gill whom he called his daughter, on the mother's side of exalted parentage. Selene, or the Moon, had seen Alexan- der sleeping like Endymion, had become enamoured of him, and had descended to his embraces. The young lady he de- clared to be the offspring of this celestial union. Rutilian, being a widower, was informed that Selene and ^sculapius had selected him to be her husband. He was delighted. He believed the marriage to be an adoption into heaven. Like Menelaus, he would never die, being the son-in-law of a god, and the nuptials were celebrated with august solemnity. Abonotichus after this became a holy city, a Mecca, a place of pilgrimage. The prophet was a power in tiie Empire, and began to surround himself with pomp and display. Among other ceremonies he instituted a public service in the temple in imitation of the mysteries of Eleusis. That he was able to present such scenes with impunity is a most curious illustration of the mental con- dition of the time. The service commenced with a procession of acolytes, carrying torches, the prophet at their head, like the priests of Ceres, giving notice to the profane to keep aloof, and inviting the believers in ^sculapius to approach and take part in the holy mystery. The profane whom he specially meant were the Christians and the atheists. The prdpbet s])oke ; the congregation answered. The prophet said, •• Away with the Christians!" The people replied, "Away with the atheists 1 " Those who presented themselves for connnunion were examined first by Alexander to ascertain their fitness. If found unorthodox, they were excluded from the temple. The ceremonial then commenced. It consisted of a series of tableaux. The first day was given to representations of the lying-in of Latona, the birth of Apollo, the marriage of Apollo and Coronis, with the issue of it in the generation of ^sculapius. On the second day 304 A Cagliostro of the Second Century. there was the incarnation of " the sweet one," with the Chalcedon plates, the goose egg, and tlie snake. Alexan- der himself was the hero of the third. A new revelation, it seems, had informed him of mysterious circumstances attending his own coming into tlie world. His mother had been visited by Podalirius, ^sculapius's mythical son. The temple was then brilliantly illuminated. The prophet, after some preliminary gesticulations, laid himself down, as Endymion, to sleep upon a couch. Selene, the Moon, per- sonated by the beautiful wife of an officer of the imperial court, who was the prophet's mistress, descended upon him from the roof and covered hira with kisses, the husband looking on, delighteleasaiit surprise. The grandees got out in a high state of indignation. They called for their servants, but their servants did not hear tiiem, or laughed and passed on. The conductors had for- gotten to be obsequious. All classes on the platform were suddenly on a level. A heggar-woman hustled the ducliess as she was standing astonished because her maid had left her to carry her own hag. The patricians were pushed about among the crowd with no more concern tlian if tiiey had been common mortals. They demanded loudly to S(^e the station-master. The minister complained angrily o^ the delay ; an important negotiation would be imperilled by his detention, and he threatened the company with the dis- pleasure of his department. A consequential youth who had just heard of the death of his elder brother was flying home to take his inheritance. A great lady had secured, as she had hoped. a brilliant match for her daughter; her work over, she had been at the baths to recover from the dissipa- tion of the season ; difficulty had risen unlooked for, and 354 A Sidivff at a Railway Station. unless she was at hand to remove it, the worst consequences might be feared. A banker declared that the credit of a leading commercial house might fail unless he could be at home on tlie day fixed for his return : he alone could save it A solicitor had the evidence in his portmanteau which would determine the succession to the lands and title of an ancient family. An elderly gentleman was in despair about his young wife whom he had left at home ; he had made a will by which she was to lose his fortune if she married again after his death, but the will was lying in his desk unsigned. The archbishop was on his way to a synod where the great question was to be discussed whether gas might be used at the altar instead of candles. The altar candles were blessed before they were used, and the doubt was whether gas could be blessed. The right reverend prel- ate conceived that if the gas tubes were made in the shape of candles the difficulty could be got over, but he feared that without his moderating influence the majority might come to a rash decision. All these persons were clamoring over their various anxieties with the most naive frankness, the truth coming freely out, whatever it might be. One distinguished looking lady in deep mourning, with a sad gentle face, alone was resigned and hopeful. It seemed that her husband had been stopped not long before at tlie same station. She thought it possible that she might meet him again. The station-master listened to the complaints with com- posed indifference. He told the loudest that they need not alarm themselves. The State would survive the absence of the minister. The minister, in fact, was not thinking of the State at all, but of the party triumph which he ex- pected ; and the peerage which was to be his reward, the station-master said would now be of no use to him. The youth had a second brother who would succeed instead of him, and the tenants would not be inconvenienced by the change. The fine lady's daughter would marry to her own A Siding at a Railway Station. 355 liking instead of her mother's, and would he all the happier for it. The commercial house was ah-eady insolvent, and the longer it lasted the more innocent people would be ruined by it. The boy whom the lawyer intended to make into a rich baronet was now working industriously at school, and would grow up a useful man. If a great estate fell in to him he would be idle and dissolute. The old man might congratulate himself that he had escaped so soon from the scrape into which he had fallen. His wife would marry an adventurer, and would suffer worse from inheriting his fortune. The archbishop was commended for his anxiety. His solution of the candle problem was no doubt an excel- lent one ; but his clergy were now provided with a harm- less subject to quarrel over, and if it was adopted they might fall out over something else which might be seriously mischievous. " Do you mean, then, that you are not going to send us forward at all ? " the minister inquired sternly. " You will see," the station-master answered with a curi- ous short laugh. I observed that he looked more gently at the lady in mourning. She had said nothing, but he knew what was in her mind, and though he held out no hope in words that her wish would be gratified, he smiled sadly, and the irony passed out of his face. The crowd, meanwhile, were standing about the platform whistling tunes or amusing themselves, not ill-naturedly, at the distress of their grand companions. Something con- siderable was happening. But they had so long experienced the ups and downs of things that they were prepared for what fortune might send. They had not expected to find a Paradise where they were going, and one place might be as good as another. They had nothing belonging to them ex- cept the clothes they stood in and their bits of skill in their different trades. Wherever men were, there would be need of cobblers and tailors, and smiths and carpenters. If not, they might fall on their feet somehow if there was work to be done of any sort. 356 A Siding at a Railway Station. Presently a bell rang, a door was flung open, and we were ordered into a waiting-room, where we were told that our luggage was to be examined. It was a large, barely furnished apartment, like the salle d'attente at the Northern Railway Station at Paris. A rail ran across, behind wliicli we were all penned ; opposite to us was the usual long table, on which were piled boxes, bags, ami portmanteaus, and l)e- hiiid them stood a row of officials, in a plain uniform with gold bands round their caps, and the dry peremptory man- ner which passengers accustomed to deference so particu- larly dislike. At their backs was a screen extending across the room, reaching half way to the ceiling ; in the rear of it there was apparently an office. We each looked to see that our particular belongings were sate, but we were surprised to find that we could recognize none of them. Packages there were in plenty, alleged to be the property of the passengers who had come in by the train. They were arranged in the three classes — first, sec- ond, and third — but the proportions were inverted : most of it was labelled as the luggage of the travellers in fustian, who had brought nothing with them but what they carried in their hands ; a moderate heap stood where the second- class luggage sliould have been, and some of superior qual- ity, but none of us could make out the shapes of our own trunks. As to the grand ladies and gentlemen, the innu- merable articles which I had seen put as theirs into the vaii were nowhere to be found. A few shawls and cloaks lay upon the planks, and that was all. There was a lond out- cry, but the officials were accustomed to it, and took no notice. The station-master, who was still in charge of us, said briefly that the saloon luggage would be sent forward in the next train. The late owners would have no more use for it, and it would be delivered to their friends. The late owners ! Were we no longer actual owners, then ? My individual loss was not great, and, besides, it might be made up to me, for I saw my name on a strange A lading at a Railway Station. 357 box on the table, and being of curious disposition, the sin- gularity of the adventure made it interesting to me. The consternation of the rest was indescribable. The minister supposed that he had fallen among Communists, who disbe- lieved in property, and was beginning a speech on the ele- mentary conditions of society, when silence was called, and the third-class passengers were ordered to advance, that their boxes might be opened. Each man had his own care- fully docketed. The lids flew off, and within, instead of clothes and shoes and dressing apparatus and money and jewels and such like, were simply samples of the work which he had done in his life. There was an account-book, also, in which was entered the number of days which he had worked, the number and size of the fields, etc., which he had drained and enclosed and ploughed, the crops which he had reaped, the walls which he had built, the metal which he had dug out and smelted and fashioned into arti- cles of use to mankind, the leather which he had tanned, the clothes which lie had woven — all entered with punctual exactness ; and on the opposite page, the wages which he had received, and the share which had been allotted to him of the good things which he had helped to create. Besides his work, so specifically called, there were his actions — his affection for his parents, or his wife and chil- dren, his self-denials, his charities, his purity, his truth, his honesty, or, it might be, ugly catalogues of sins and oaths and drunkenness and brutality. But inquiry into action was reserved for a second investigation before a higher commissioner. The first examination was confined to the literal work done by each man for the general good — how much he had contributed, and how much society had done for him in return ; and no one, it seemed, could be allowed to go any further without a certificate of having passed this test satisfactorily. With the workmen, the balance in most instances was found enormously in their favor. The state of the case was so clear that the scrutiny was rapidly got 358 A Siding at a Railway Station. over, and they and their luggage were passed in to the higher court. A few were found whose boxes were empty, who had done nothing useful all their lives, and had sub- sisted by begging and stealing. These were ordered to stand aside till the rest of us had been disposed of. The saloon passengers were taken next. Most of them, who had nothing at all to show, were called up together, and were asked what they had to say for themselves. A well-dressed gentleman, who spoke for the rest, said that the whole investigation was a mystery to him. He and his friends had been born to good fortunes, and had found themselves, on entering upon life, amply provided for. Tliey had never been told that work was required of them, either work with their hands or work with their heads — in fact, work of any kind. It was right, of course, for the poor to work, because they could not honestly live otlier- wise. For themselves, they had spent their time in amuse- ments, generally innocent. They had paid for everything which they had consumed. They had stolen nothing, taken nothing from any man by violence or fraud. Tiiey had kept the commandments, all ten of them, from the time when they were old enough to understand them. The speaker, at least, declared that he had no breach of any commandment on his own conscience, and ho believed he might say as much of his companions. They were superior people, who had been always looked up to and well spoken of, and to call upon them to show what they had, done was against reason and equity. " Gentlemen," said the chief official, " we have heard this many times ; yet as often as it is repeated we feel fresh astonishment. You have been in a world where work is the condition of life. Not a meal can be had by any man that some one has not worked to produce. Those who work deserve to eat ; those who do not work deserve to starve. There are but three ways of living : by working, by stealing, or by begging. Those who have not lived by A Siding at a Railway Station. 359 the first have lived by one of the other two. And no mat- ter how superior you think yourselves, you will not pass here till you have something of your own to produce. You have had your wages beforehand — ample wages, as you acknowledge yourselves. What have you to show ? " " Wages ! " the speaker said. " We are not hired ser- vants ; we received no wages. What we spent was our own. All the orders we received were that we were not to do wrong. We have done no wrong. I appeal to the higher court." But the appeal could not be received. To all who pre- sented themselves with empty boxes, no matter who they were, or how excellent their characters appeared to one an- other, there was the irrevocable answer, " No admittance, till you come better furnished." All who were i:i this con- dition, the duke and duchess among them, were ordered to stand aside with the thieves. The duchess declared that she had given the finest parties in the season, and as it was universally agreed that they had been the most tedious, and that no one had found any pleasure there, a momentary doubt rose whether they might not have answered some useful purpose in disgusting people with such modes of en- tertainment ; but no evidence of this was forthcoming : the world had attended them because the world had nothing else to do ; and she and hor guests had been alike unprofit- able. Thus the large majority of the saloon passengers was disposed of. The minister, the archbishop, the lawyer, the banker, and others, who, although they had no material work credited to them, had yet been active and laborious in their different callings, were passed to the superior judges. Our turn came next, — ours of the second class, — and a motley gathering we were. Busy we must all have been, from the multitude of articles which we found assigned to us. Manufacturers with their wares, solicitors with their lawsuits, doctors and clergymen with the bodies and souls which they had saved or lost, authors with their books, 360 A Siding at a Raihrny Station. painters and sculptors with their pictures and statues. But the hard test was applied to all that we had produced, — the wages which we had received on one side, and the value of our exertions to mankind on the other, — and imposing as our performances looked when laid out to be examined, we liad been paid, most of us, out of all proportion to what we were found to have deserved. I was reminded of a large CJmpartraent in the Paris Exhibition, where an active gen- tleman, wishing to show the state of English literature, had collected copies of every book, review, pamphlet, or news- paper which Iiad been published in a single year. Tlie bulk was overwhelming, but the figures were only decimal points, and the worth of the whole was a fraction above zero. A few of us were turned back summarily among the thieves and the fine gentlemen and ladies : speculators who had done nothing but handle money which had clung to their fingers in passing through them, divines who had preached a morality which they did not practise, and fluent orators who had made speeches which they knew to be non- sense, philosophers who had spun out of moonshine systems of the universe, distinguished pleaders who had defeated justice while they established points of law, writers of books upon subjects of which they knew enough to mis- lead their readers, purveyors of luxuries which had added nothing to human health or strength, physicians and apothecaries who had pretended to knowledge which they knew that they did not possess, — these all, as the contents of their boxes bore witness against them, were thrust back into the rejected herd. There were some whose account stood better as having at least produced something of real merit, but they were cast on the point of wages ; modest excellence had come badly off ; the plausible and unscrupulous had thriven and grown rich. It was tragical, and evidently a surprise to most of us, to see how mendacious we had been : how we had sanded our sugar, watered our milk, scamped our car- A Siding at a Railway Station. 361 pentering and mason's work, literally and metaphorically ; how in all things we hud been thinking less of producing good work than of the profit which we could make out of it; how we had sold ourselves to tell lies and act them, because the public found lies pleasant and truth expensive and troublesome. Some of us were manifest rogues, who had bought cheap and sold dear, had used false measures add weights, had made cotton pass for wool, and hemp for silk, and tin for silver. The American pedlar happened to be in the party who had put a rind upon a grindstone and had sold it as a cheese. These were promptly sifted out and placed with their fellows ; only persons whose services were on the whole greater than the pay which they had re- ceived were allowed their certificates. Wheu my own box was opened, 1 perceived that though the wages had been small the work done seemed smaller still, and I was sur- prised to find myself among those wlio had passed. The whistle of a train was heard at this moment coming in upon the main line. It was to go on in half an hour, and those who had been turned back were told that they were to proceed by it to the place where they had been originally going. They looked infinitely relieved at the news ; but, before they started, a few questions had to be put to them, and a few alterations made which were to affect their future. They were asked to explain how they had come to be such worthless creatures. They gave many answers, which came mainly to the same thing. Circum- stances had been against them. It was all owing to cir- cumstances. They had been badly brought up. They had been placed in situations where it had been impossible for them to do better. The rich people repeated that they had flever been informed that any work was expected of them. Their wants had all been provided for, and it was unfair to expect that they should have exerted themselves of their own accord when they had no motive for working. If they had only been born poor all would have gone well with 362 A Siding at a Railway Station. them. The cheating tradesman declared that the first duty of a shopkeeper, according to all received principles, was to make money and better his condition. It was the buyer's business to see to the quality of the articles which he purchased ; the shopkeeper was entitled to sell his wares at the highest price which he could get for them. So, at least, it was believed and taught by the recognized authori- ties on the subject. The orators, preachers, newspaper writers, novel-writers, etc., etc., of whom there were a great many, appealed to the crowds who came to listen to them, or bought and read their productions. Tout le monde, it was said, was wiser than the wisest single sage. They had given the world what, the world wished for and approved ; they had worked at supplying it with all their might, and it was extremely hard to blame them for guiding them- selves by the world's judgment. The thieves and vaga- bonds argued that they had been brought into existence without their consent being asked : they had not wished for it ; although they had not been without their pleasures, they regarded existence on the whole as a nuisance which they would gladly have been spared. Being alive, how- ever, they had to keep alive ; and for all that they could see, they had as full a right to the good things which the world contained as anybody else, provided they could get them. They were called thieves. Law and language were made by the property owners, who were their natural enemies. If society had given them the means of living honestly they would have found it easy to be honest. Society had done nothing for them — why should they do anything for society ? So, in their various ways, those who had been " plucked " defended themselves. They were all delighted to hear that they were to have another chance ; and I was amused to observe that though some of them had pretended that they had not wished to be born, and had rather not have been born, not one of them protested against being sent A Siding' at a Railway Station. 363 back. All they asked was that they should be put in a new position, and that the adverse influences should be taken off. I expected that among these adverse influences they would have mentioned the faults of their own dis- positions. My own opinion had lieen that half the mis- doings of men came from congenital defects of character which they had brought with them into the world, and that constitutional courage, right-mindedness, and practical ability were as much gifts of nature or circumstance as the accidents of fortune. A change in this respect was of more consequence than in any other. But with themselves they were all apparently satisfied, and they required only an improvement in their surroundings. The alterations were rapidly made. The duchess was sent to begin her life again in a laborer's cottage. She was to attend the village school, and rise thence into a housemaid. The fine gentleman was made a ploughboy. Tlie authors and preachers were to become mechanics, and hound appren- tices to carpenters and blacksmiths. A philosopher, who. Laving had a good fortune and unbroken health, had in- sisted that the world was as good as it could be made, was to be born blind and paralytic, and to find his way through life under the new conditions. The thieves and cheats, wlio pretended that their misdemeanors were due to pov- erty, yfere to find themselves, when they arrived in the world again, in palaces surrounded with luxury. The cup oE Lethe was sent round. The past became a blank. They were liurried into the train ; the engine screamed and flew away with them. " They will be all here again in a few years," the station- master said, " and it will be the same story over again. I have had these very people in my hands a dozen times. They have been tried in all positions, and there is still nothing to show, and nothing but complaints of circum- stances. For my part, I would put them out altogether." « How long is it to last ? " I asked. » Well," he said, « it 364 A Siding at a Railway Station. does not depend on me. No one passes here who cannot prove that he has lived to some purpose. Some of the worst I have known made at last into pigs and geese, to be fatted up and eaten, and made of use in that way. Others have become asses, condemned to carry burdens, to be beaten with sticks, and to breed asses like themselves for a hundred generations. All animated creatures tend to take the shape at last which suits their character." The train was scarcely out of sight when again the bell rang. The scene changed as at a theatre. The screen was rolled back, and we who were left found ourselves in the presence of four grave-looking persons, like the board of ex- aminers whom we remembered at college. We were called up one by one. The work which had passed the first ordeal was again looked into, and the quality of it compared with the talent or faculty of the producer, to see how far he had done his best ; whether anywhere he had done worse than he might have done and knew bow to have done ; while besides, in a separate aollection, were the vices, the sins, the selfishnesses and ill-humors, with, in the other scale, the acts of personal duty, of love and kindness and charity, which had increased the happiness or lightened the sorrows of those connected with him. These last, I observed, had generally been forgotten by the owner, who saw them ap- pear with surprise, and even repudiated them with protest. In the work, of course, both material and moral, there was every gradation, both of kind and merit. But while noth- ing was absolutely worthless, everything, even the highest achievements of the greatest artist or the greatest saint, fell short of absolute perfection. Each of us saw our own per- formances, from our first ignorant beginnings to what we regarded as our greatest triumph ; and it was easy to trace how much of our faults were due to natural deficiencies and the necessary failures of inexperience, and how much to self-will or vanity or idleness. Some taint of mean mo- tives, too, some desire of reward, desire of praise or honor A Siding at a Railway Station. 365 or wealth, some foolish seif-satisf action, when satisfaction ought not to have been felt, was to be seen infecting every- thing, even the very best which was presented for scrutiny. So plain was this that one of us, an earnest, impressive- looking person, whose own work bore inspection better than that of most of us, exclaimed passionately that, so far us he was concerned, the examiners might spare their labor. From his earliest years he had known what he ouglit to do, and in no instance had he ever completely done it. He had struggled ; he had conquered his grosser faults ; but the farther he had gone, and the better he had been able to do, his knowledge had still grown faster than his power of act- ing upon it ; and every additional day that he had lived his shortcomings had become more miserably plain to him. Even if he could have reached perfection at last, he could not undo the past, and the faults of his youth would bear wit- ness against him and call for his condemnation. Therefore, he said, he abhorred himself. He had no merit which could entitle him to look for favor. He had labored on to the end, but he had labored with a full knowledge that the best which he could offer would be unworthy of acceptance. He had been told, and he believed, that a high spirit, not sub- ject to infirmity, had done his work for him, and done it perfectly, and that if he abandoned all claim on his own ac- count he might be accepted for the sake of what another had done. This, he trusted, was true, and it was his sole dependence. In the so-called good actions with which he seemed to be credited, there was nothing that was really good ; there was not one which was altogether what it ought to have been. He was evidently sincere, and what he said was undoubt- edly true — true of him and true of every one. Even in the vehemence of his self-abandonment a trace lingered of the taint which he was confessing, for he was a polemical divine ; he had spent his life and gained a reputation in maintaining this particular doctrine. He believed it, but he had not forgotten that he had been himself its champion. 366 A Siding at a Railway/ Station. The examiner looked kindly at him ; but answered, " We do not expect impossibilities ; and we do not blame you when you have not accomplished what is beyond your strength. Only those who are themselves perfect can do anything perfectly. Human beings are born ignorant and helpless. They bring into the world with them a disposi- tion to seek what is pleasant to themselves, and what is pleasant is not always right. They learn to live as they learn everything else. At first they cannot do rightly at all. They improve under teaching and practice. The best only arrive at excellence. We do not find fault with the painter on account of his first bad copies, if they were as good as could be looked for at his age. Every craftsman acquires his art by degrees. He begins badly ; he cannot help it ; and it is the same with life. You learn to walk by falling down. You learn to live by going wrong and experiencing the consequences of it. We do not record against a man ' the sins of his youth ' if he has been hon- estly trying to improve himself. We do not require the same self-control in a child as in a man. We do not re- quire the same attainments from all. Some are well taught, some are ill taught, some are not taught at all. Some have naturally good dispositions, some have naturally bad dis- positions. Not one has had power ' to fulfil the law,' as you call it, completely. Therefore, it is no crime in him if lie fails. We reckon as faults those only which arise from idleness, wilfulness, selfishness, and deliberate preference of evil to good. Each is judged according to what be has re- ceived." I was amused to observe how pleased the archbishop looked while the examiner was speaking. He had himself been engaged in controversy with this gentleman on the share of " good works " in justifying a man, and if the ex- aminer had not taken his side iu the discussion he had at least demolished his adversary. The archbishop had been the more disinterested in the line which he had taken, as A Siding at a Railway Station. 367 his own " works," though in several large folios, weighed extremely little; and, indeed, hud it not been for passages in his early life — he had starved himself at college that he might not be a burden upon his widowed mother — I do not know but that he might have been sent back into the world to serve as a parish clerk. For myself, there were questions which I was longing to ask, and I was trying to collect my courage to speak. I wanted chiefly to know what the examiner meant by " natu- ral disposition." Was it that a man might be born with a natural fui)acity for becoming a saint, as another man with a capacity to become a great artist or musician, and that each of us could only grow to the limits of his natural powers? And, again, were idleness, wilfulness, selfishness, etc., etc., natural dispositions ? — for in that case — But at the moment the bell rang again, and my own name was called. There was no occasion to ask who I was. In every instance the identity of the person, his history, small or large, and all that he had said or done, was placed before the court so clearly that there was no need for ex- torting a confession. There stood the catalogue inexorably impartial, the bad actions in a schedule painfully large, the few good actions veined with personal motives which spoilt the best of them. In the way of -nijrk there was nothing to be shown but certain books and other writings, and these were spread out to be tested. A fluid was poured on the pages, the effect of which was to obliterate entirely every untrue proposition, and to make every partially true prop- osition grow faint in proportion to the false element which entered into it. Alas ! chapter after chapter vanished away, leaving the paper clean, as if no compositor had ever labored in setting type for it. Pale and illegible became the fine-sounding paragraphs on which I had secretly prided myself. A few passages, however, survived here and there at long intervals. They were those on which I had labored least, and had almost forgotten, or those, as I observed ia 368 A Siding at a Railway Station. one or two instances, which had been selected for special reprobation in the weekly journals. Something stood to my credit, and the worst charge of wilfully and intention- ally setting down what I did not believe to be true was not alleged against me. Ignorance, prejudice, carelessness ; sins of infirmity — culpable indeed, but not culpable in the last degree ; the water in the ink, the commonplaces, the ineffectual sentiments : these, to my unspeakable comfort, I perceived were my heaviest crimes. Had I been accused of absolute worthlessness, I should have pleaded guilty in the state of humiliation to which I was reduced ; but things were better than they might have been. I was flattering myself that when it came to the wages question, the balance would be in my favor : so many years of labor — such and such cheques received from my publisher. Here, at least, I held myself safe, and I was in good hope that I might scrape through. The examiner was good-natured in his manner. A reviewer who had been listening for my con- demnation was beginning to look disgusted, when suddenly one of the walls of the court became transparent, and there appeared an interminable vista of creatures — creatures of all kinds from land and water, reaching away into the ex- treme distance. They were those which in the course of ray life I had devoured, either in part or whole, to sustain my unconscionable carcass. There they stood in lines with solemn and reproachful faces — oxen and calves, sheep and lambs, deer, hares, rabbits, turkeys, ducks, chickens, pheas- ants, grouse, and partridges, down to the larks and sparrows and blackbirds, which I had shot when a boy and made into puddings. Every one of them had come up to bear witness against their murderer ; out of sea and river had come the trout and salmon, the soles and turbots, the ling and cod, the whiting and mackerel, the smelts and white- bait, the oysters, the crabs, the lobsters, the shrimps. They seemed literally to be in millions, and I had eaten them all. I talked of wages. These had been my wages. At this A Siding at a Railway Station. 369 enormous cost liad ray existence been maintained. A stag spoke for tlie rest. " We all," he said, " were sacrificed to keep this coimorant in being, and to enable him to produce the miserable bits of printed paper which are all that he has to show for himself. Our lives were dear to us. In meadow and wood, in air and water, we wandered harmless and innocent, enjoying the pleasant sunlight, the light of heaven and the sparkling waves ; we were not worth much ; we have no pretensions to high qualities. If the person who stands here to answer for himself can affirm that his value in the universe was equivalent to the value of all of us who were sacrificed to feed him, we have no more to say. Lot it be so pronounced. We shall look at our numbers, and we shall wonder at the judgment, lliougli we shall withdraw our complaint. But for ourselves we say freely that we have long watched him, — him and his fellows, — and we have failed to see in what the superiority of the human creature lies. We know him only as the most cunning, the most destructive, and, unhappily, the longest lived of all carnivorous beasts. His delight is in killing. Even when his hunger is satisfied he kills us for his mere amusement." The oxen lowed approval, the sheep bleated, the birds screamed, the fishes flapped their tails. I, for myself, stood mute and self-condemned. What answer but one was possible ? Had I been myself on the bench I could not liave hesitated. The fatal sentence of condemnation was evidently about to be uttered, when the scene became in- distinct, there was a confused noise, a change of condition, a sound of running feet and of many voices. I awoke ; I was again in the railway carriage ; the door was thrown open ; porters entered to take our things. We stepped out upon the platform. We were at the terminus for which we had been originally destined. Carriages and cabs were waiting ; tall powdered footmen flew to the assistance of the diike and duchess. The station-master was standing 24 370 A. Siding at a Railway Station. hat in hand, and obsequiously bowing; the minister's private secretary had come to meet his right honorable chief with the red despatch-box, knowing the impatience with which it was waited for. The dnlie shook liands with the archbishop before he drove away. " Dine with us to morrow ? " he said. " I have had a very singular dream. You shall be my Daniel and interpret it for me." The archbishop regretted infinitely that he mu^ deny him- self the honor ; his presence was required at the Conference. " I, too, have dreamt," he said ; " but with your Grace and me the realities of this world are too serious to leave us leisure for the freaks of imagination."